Heaven & Earth
EDITED BY
JENNY ALBANI AND EUGENIA CHALKIA
HELLENIC REPUBLIC
MINISTRY OF CULTURE AND SPORTS
ATHENS 2013
BENAKI
MUSEUM
The Companion Volume is issued in conjunction with the exhibition Heaven and Earth: Art of Byzantium from Greek Collections,
held at the National Gallery of Art, Washington, D.C., from October 6, 2013, through March 2, 2014,
and at the J. Paul Getty Museum, Los Angeles, from April 9 through August 25, 2014.
The exhibition was organized by the Hellenic Ministry of Culture and Sports, Athens, with the collaboration of the Benaki Museum, Athens,
and in association with the National Gallery of Art, Washington D.C., and the J. Paul Getty Museum, Los Angeles
Editors JENNY ALBANI, EUGENIA CHALKIA
Research assistants ELENI CHARCHARE, ANTONIS TSAKALOS, SOTIRIS FOTAKIDIS
Bibliography VASSILIKI P. KLOTSA
Glossary ELENI CHARCHARE, ANTONIS TSAKALOS
Translators from Greek FREYA EVENSON
VALERIE NUNN (Essay by I. Anagnostakis)
DEBORAH KAZAZI (Forewards, Essays by A. Tourta, E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou, E. Drakopoulou, Ch. Koilakou)
Translator from French ALEXANDRA BONFIONTE-WARREN (Essay by C. Abadie-Reynal)
Text editor RUSSELL STOCKMAN
Designer FOTINI SAKELLARI
Photographers VELISSARIOS VOUTSAS, ELPIDA BOUBALOU
Map design PENELOPE MATSOUKA, ANAVASI EDITIONS
Color separations PANAYOTIS VOUVELIS
Printing ADAM EDITIONS-PERGAMOS
Financial Management DIMITRIS DROUNGAS
Printed on Fedrigony 150 gsm
SPONSOR
The exhibition’s international tour is made possible through OPAP S.A.’s major funding. Financial support is also provided by the A.G. Leventis Foundation.
The exhibition is supported by an indemnity from the Federal Council on the Arts and the Humanities
Published by the Hellenic Ministry of Culture and Sports and the Benaki Museum, Athens
© 2013 Hellenic Ministry of Culture and Sports
© 2013 Benaki Museum
All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced or transmitted by any means, electronic or mechanical,
including photocopying, recording, or information retrieval system, without permission from the publishers.
ISBN 978-960-476-132-6 (HC)
ISBN 978-960-476-133-3 (PBC)
Jacket / Cover illustration The city of Jerusalem, detail from the Entry into Jerusalem. Wall painting, circa 1428. Mistra, katholikon of the Pantanassa Monastery.
Frontispiece Backdrop, detail from the zone of the martyrs. Dome mosaic, late 4th–6th century. Thessalonike, Rotunda.
|4|
Chapter [2 ]
RURAL GREECE IN THE BYZANTINE PERIOD
IN LIGHT OF NEW ARCHAEOLOGICAL EVIDENCE
EUGENIA GEROUSI
T
he archaeological map of Greece has become denser over the past
two decades, thanks to the results of archaeological research carried
out during large- and small-scale public works, as well as smaller
private archaeological projects. Among these results finds dating to the
Byzantine period have enriched our knowledge of life in Greece’s cities and
countryside throughout the Byzantine era. Modern roads generally follow
ancient routes, and thus, the excavations taking place today in extensive
Fig. 18 | Kiln of the Late Byzantine workshop at the
Tsikare site, Thessaly.
areas of the modern and ancient countryside create an opportunity for a
first look at the important, though largely unknown, aspect of the rural
countryside during Late Antiquity and the Byzantine period. Sites with way
stations or inns, country villas, cemeteries, settlements, baths, and larger or
smaller industrial installations such as wine and olive presses and ceramic
workshops, add to the list of already known sites and aid in the
reconstruction of the map of Byzantine Greece (fig. 19).
Fig. 17 | Aerial view of the excavation at the Vale of
Tempe next to the Athens–Thessalonike highway under
construction.
| 31 |
Fig. 19 | Map of Greece showing Via Egnatia, new highways, and excavation sites.
| 32 |
uring the long history of the Byzantine Empire, in addition
to the sea routes, of which Constantinople was the center
due to its exceptional geographical location, the old, well-organized
network of Roman overland routes was also used, having been
adapted to fit the demands of the time.1 Via Egnatia, the large
Roman artery traversing the Balkan Peninsula from the eastern
Adriatic to Byzantium, continued to play a decisive role in the
Byzantine Empire, and later in the Ottoman Empire.2 At regular
intervals along its length in Roman times there were supply
stations for horses (mutationes), inns (mansiones), and towns or
cities that provided for longer stays (stationes civitas).
During major construction on the modern Egnatia Hodos in
the 1990s an archaeological excavation in the valley of ancient
Mygdonia revealed a complex of buildings identified as a way
station3 (fig. 20a). The long and narrow valley, just past Rentina
Pass, which spreads between the Bertiskos mountain range and
Kerdyllio Mountain and the Strymonian Gulf, was even in the
most ancient times an area of particular strategic importance. Thus
it was always the area through which the east–west road was run,
as it continues to be today. The building complex, with an apse on
one side and a large interior court, was the result of additions and
renovations to an original, smaller building dating to the fourth
century A.D. The building was used most intensely from the
middle of the fifth century to the middle of the sixth century A.D.,
after which it was abandoned. The complex, in the form in which
it was revealed during the excavation, is made up of many rooms,
several of which had a second story. It featured a large oven for
food preparation, a well-organized drainage system, and a bath with
hypocaust heating system in the court. The inn’s location was fairly
isolated; protected by its elevation on a high saddle, it afforded a
commanding view of the valley and the Via Egnatia below.
Various roads began at Via Egnatia and led south. One of these,
Kyria Hodos, which is mentioned in the Tabula Peutingeriana,
began in Thessalonike and ran south along the coast toward
Thessaly.4 It passed Katerine and Platamon and traversed the Vale
of Tempe to the Larissa plain. Previous research had found along
this primary route the foundations of a twelfth-century inn at the
Kitros Castle. The fortified city of Kitros, founded in the Justinian
period on the site most likely identified as the ancient acropolis of
Pydna, was substantially improved and developed in the tenth
century, after the turbulent period of Slavic invasions (6th–7th
centuries). Its harbor acquired commercial traffic, as confirmed by
finds such as the hypocaust bath and the inn. The inn itself (fig.
20b) exhibits two building phases; initially, in the eleventh century,
it was smaller and made up of a rectangular hall with a roofed
D
porch and a semi-enclosed space housing stables, while later, in the
middle of the twelfth century, other spaces were added.5
Recent construction on the highway connecting Thessalonike
and Athens (PATHE/Patras—Athens—Thessalonike—Euzonoi)
presented an opportunity for excavations in 2008 in the Vale of
Tempe, an area for which there were only historical sources and
travelers’ descriptions (fig. 17). In the lower foothills at the western
exit of the pass at Tempe, a long, narrow building was found with
three internal divisions, and which could be identified as an inn6
(figs. 20c, 21). The building lies at a distance of some 33 feet from
the modern road, which follows the path of the ancient one, and is
oriented precisely toward it. Numismatic evidence dates the main
phase of the building to the period following the reign of the
emperor Basil I (867–86). In form the building is similar to that of
the first phase of the Byzantine inn at Pydna.7 According to the
excavator, the site of the inn can be identified as the mutatio Thuris,
one of the smaller supply stations mentioned in the Tabula
Peutingeriana and other Roman travel documents, as it is situated
halfway between two main supply stations—mansio Stenas at the
eastern exit of the Vale of Tempe and mansio Olympu at the
western one—a distance of 7½ miles (12 km). Furthermore, the site
of the inn is precisely at the exit from the extremely narrow part of
the valley, where there would have been urgent need for a rest stop.8
It is interesting to note that the area is known as “Inn of Kokkona,”
from a nearby Ottoman inn that is known from travelers’ accounts
from the Ottoman period, although not preserved today.
Another important road connecting north and south followed
the coast along the eastern flanks of Mt. Ossa. Alexios Komnenos
chose to travel this road in the spring of 1083 to avoid the
guarded pass at Tempe, during his campaign against the Normans
who had besieged Larissa.9 Archaeological research in the wider
region began in 2000 and continues today, within the framework
of improvements to the roadways and primarily, the large project
to rehabilitate Lake Karla, which had dried up in 1962, creating
huge environmental problems. New archaeological evidence for
the installations and activities taking place in the area from
prehistoric up until recent times has been gathered through this
research. Here, too, the Byzantine road followed the route of the
ancient one, which was repeatedly used by armies coming down
from the north.10 The impressive castle of Velika dominates the
seaside area of Meliboia,11 where there was a dense cluster of Early
Christian monuments. The castle, which covers 21 stremma (5.25
acres), is being revealed as clearing projects over the past few years
have removed the vegetation that covered both the fortifications
and the interior. The castle appears to date to the Early Byzantine
| 33 |
a
b
c
Fig. 20 | Ground plans of the inns in ancient Mygdonia (after Adam-Veleni 2003), Pydna (after Marki 1991), and the Vale of Tempe.
Fig. 21 | Panoramic view of the excavations in the Vale of Tempe with the Middle Byzantine inn and adjacent church of the same period.
| 34 |
period, without later interventions. Many sections of the
fortifications have been revealed, as well as storage areas for
agricultural products with large storage jars in situ, workshops, a
three-aisle basilica, and sections of a densely constructed settlement
of the Early Byzantine period, which had also not suffered later
interventions. Many of the settlement’s buildings are preserved to
a height of more than 6½ feet (2 m).
In the Middle Byzantine period settlement becomes denser in
Kissabos and near Lake Karla. Workshop installations were
located in Kissabos, the Mount of Cells (“Oros ton Kellion”)
according to Anna Komnene, relating to the presence of numerous
monastic communities in the area. One such installation is the
impressively preserved twelfth-century wine press at Paliouria of
Meliboia,12 near Byzantine Tarsanas.13 Archaeological research has
uncovered small settlements densely arranged in the area around
Lake Karla dating to the Early Christian and especially the Middle
Byzantine periods, with workshop installations, such as ironworks,
pottery workshops, and spaces for storing and processing
agricultural products14 (fig. 22).
A general characteristic of the agricultural economy of all
periods of the Byzantine state is the predominance of multicultivation.15 Of the various agricultural crops, cultivation of the
olive and the vine, with favorable local soil and climate conditions,
has been one of the most important pursuits of Greece’s rural
population through the ages, and an important factor in a region’s
development and prosperity.
Excavations at the fortified bishop’s complex at Louloudies near
Kitros, undertaken in the 1980s during the construction of the
new rail line linking Athens and Thessalonike, brought to light
sixth-century industrial installations for the processing of wine and
oil16 (fig. 23). The installations of the olive press and the winery
were complete, as they included large reservoirs, wine presses,
collection tanks, olive mills of the trapetum and mola olearia type, as
well as storage areas with numerous storage jars preserved in situ.17
Due to their size, these workshops have been characterized as
industrial units that served the needs of local farmers who did not
have the necessary processing equipment themselves.18
A large agricultural installation for wine production was
discovered in 2008 in Boeotia, 2 miles east of ancient Ambrossos
(modern Distomo), during the construction of a large natural-gas
pipeline near the modern road (fig. 24). The modern road itself
must follow a course not very different from that of the ancient
one traveled by Pausanias in the second century A.D.19 The
excavated section of the winery includes a press-reservoir, collection
tank,20 and storage and other workshop spaces dating to the
fourth–sixth centuries. Preserved on the walls of the wine press is a
high-quality hydraulic mortar in multiple layers, the floor is laid
with rectangular ceramic tiles in two layers, and the subfloor is
made up of a layer of rubble with a durable mortar 20 inches thick,
designed to withstand great pressure. The floor of the press slopes
downward toward the opening of a ceramic pipe that leads to a
rectangular reservoir-collection tank. The floor of this tank also
slopes downward toward the opening of a second ceramic pipe
Fig. 22 | Oblong building, probably an Early Christian storing space, in the area near
Lake Karla in Thessaly.
leading to another reservoir. The walls of the collection tank are
also coated in a durable hydraulic mortar in multiple layers and the
floor is covered with square ceramic tiles with a double X incised
in the center. The entire installation was roofed, as indicated by the
numerous roof tiles found during excavation.21 The design and
construction of the Ambrossos wine press, with its large spaces and
reservoirs bearing successive layers of waterproof mortar, appear to
follow the established technological specifications of the time as
described in the Geoponika of Kassianos Bassos.22 Indeed, the size of
the main press-reservoir indicates that this too was an industrial
installation capable of production in quantity, as confirmed by
similar installations excavated in Greece. Moreover, the plain
around Ambrossos, according to the description of Pausanias, was
filled with vines, and until recently the region produced wine of
good quality.
Olive presses from the Byzantine period have been found in
various locations in southern Greece, such as in the city and
hinterland of medieval Sparta, one of the most flourishing cities of
the Peloponnesos and a regional commercial center. Two olive
presses of the eleventh–twelfth centuries have been uncovered in a
settlement outside the walled core of Byzantine Lakedaimon,23
while many excavations in the city of Sparta have uncovered
| 35 |
Fig. 23 | Early Christian bishop’s complex at Louloudies near Kitros, with installations
for the production of wine and oil (after Marki 2008).
building remains in which portions of olive presses, such as their
bases, were reused as building material. Older and newer finds of
this nature document the importance of olive oil as a primary
product of the wider region,24 and confirm that the southern
Peloponnesos in the twelfth century was one of the largest
producers of olive oil in the world.25
Large or small wine presses, olive presses, and agricultural
installations with storage magazines have been found in many
regions of the country, and are invaluable testimony to the
dynamism of Byzantium’s agricultural economy.26 Most of these
regions continue to maintain their agricultural character today,
however some have completely renounced it. A characteristic
example is the Mesogaia area of eastern Attica, whose fertile soil
made it a vital supplier to Athens in antiquity, but which has
been rapidly transformed in the past few decades from an
agricultural area to an urban one. Excavations in Mesogaia,
occasioned by intense building activity and the construction of
two major projects, the International Airport of Athens and the
Attica Tollway, have brought to light valuable evidence for the
agricultural exploitation of the region in Byzantine times. Among
the finds are large “granaries,” large ceramic storage jars, ceramic
beehives, worked stones used in the processing of agricultural
products, agricultural installations, and farmhouses.27 In western
Attica, indeed on the congested main artery of Peiraios Street in
Athens, in today’s densely populated western suburbs, three wine
presses were recently discovered that saw continuous use from the
eleventh to the fifteenth centuries.28 They bear witness to the
| 36 |
agricultural character of the surrounding area, something difficult
to imagine today.
One interesting and unusual find connected to the processing
of agricultural products is a water mill excavated on the Kassandra
Peninsula of Chalkidike, at the site of the sanctuary of Ammon
Zeus.29 During research in the wider archaeological site, which
includes the sanctuary, Roman baths, and a cave housing the
sanctuary of Dionysos, a water mill—hydraletis—came to light. The
mill is of the upright type with a vertical wheel and horizontal
axle, similar to that of the Athenian Agora.30 In an elongated
trench cut from the bedrock, the paddled wheel turned around a
horizontal shaft whose ends were secured in two specially formed
notches. In a small room next door, a smaller second wheel drove
two horizontal millstones, most likely placed on a wooden
platform. Fragments of millstones were found throughout the area.
There are indications that the mill was used in two separate
periods. It must have been constructed after the abandonment of
the sanctuary, probably in the middle or late fourth century A.D.,
and remained in use through the fifth and sixth centuries.
The exploitation of agricultural lands in the past is also related
to the issue of land ownership, whether small or large, a subject of
modern research. In Roman times it is known that the
construction of luxurious villas or agricultural mansions was
common, so that landowners, clearly with large holdings, could be
close to and oversee the working of their farmlands. Similar villas
continued to be used, with later interventions, and new ones
erected, in the Early Byzantine period, following the prototype of
Fig. 24 | Early Christian agricultural installation for the production of wine in Distomo, Boeotia.
the villae rusticae or villae suburbanae of previous periods. In Greece
such villas had been found during older research in Corinthia, the
Argolid, and in Messenia,31 and they continue to be discovered in
various regions of the country.
In 2002 a large portion of a luxurious villa dating to the fifth
century A.D. was excavated in Palaiokastro, to the north of
Thessalonike.32 It was surrounded by a precinct wall, of which a
four-sided tower was preserved, and had a court flanked by stoas
on all sides, a triclinium (dining hall) with a square main hall and
a semicircular niche to the north,33 and a pair of flanking rooms
with mosaic floors to the east and west. The building complex also
had a large outbuilding for storage space to the east, and a small
cistern and bath on the south side. Small fragments of the
mansion’s originally rich wall paintings had survived, imitating
architectural forms, columns and marble revetments. The ornate
mosaic floors were decorated with vines and various kinds of
birds, geometric designs, and rectangular and octagonal scenes with
a variety of subjects such as Leda and the Swan, a female dancer, a
female figure with a veil, and a personification of the Echedoros
(modern Gallikos) River, which flowed nearby.
In eastern Macedonia a similar villa was found in 1995, and
was fully excavated in the following decade, in a field in the village
of Aggista, between the cities of Serres and Drama.34 This region,
which in antiquity belonged to the territorium of Philippi, is near a
tributary of the Strymon River and the ancient Via Egnatia. The
villa covers an area of nearly 12,000 square feet (1,100 square
meters) and includes the public spaces of the triclinium and atrium
and a complex of auxiliary installations. The triclinium is made up
of a large hall ending in a semicircular apse on the west, and is
framed by five rooms and an octagonal tower on the southwest
corner. The atrium is surrounded by three stoas, and the complex
of auxiliary rooms is made up of six spaces of uneven size, each
with a separate entrance. Most of the rooms had mosaic floors,
which are poorly preserved but indicate a great variety of decorative
subjects—interlocking circles that form quatrefoils, bands of the
same width with different ornaments in each, overlapping squares
surrounding multiple concentric octagons, kantharoi with ivy
growing out of them, and a motif made up of a combination of
Solomon knots and heraldic shields, among many others.
The whole complex had three building phases. The destruction
layer of the first phase dates to the reign of Hadrian (A.D. 117–
38). The second phase, which is the main period of use, dates to
the fourth century A.D., while the buildings were also used
during the Late Byzantine period.
Another rural villa, also dating to the Early Byzantine period,
was recently discovered in western Macedonia, in the agricultural
area of Belbentos, Kozane (figs. 25–26). There is scant
information for the Byzantine periods in this area, which is
located in the watershed of the Haliakmon River. Revealed so far
are the villa’s atrium, which is connected to various rooms by
wide hallways, its triclinium, which does not have a semicircular
apse, storage areas, and a wine press. The main spaces have
complex, high-quality mosaic floors featuring a variety of
decorative motifs. The floors of the hallways around the atrium
| 37 |
Fig. 25 | Mosaic floor of an Early
Christian villa in Belbentos, Kozane.
Fig. 26 | Ground plan of an Early Christian villa in Belbentos, Kozane, with mosaic floors.
| 38 |
and of the rest of the rooms are covered with ceramic tiles
been discovered with building remains of industrial and workshop
decorated with diagonal wavy lines. The entire building complex
installations dating to the Middle Byzantine period, but of a
has a sophisticated plumbing system and hypocausts for heating.
smaller scale than that of the earlier villa.
Based on the finds, the building was continuously used from the
Countryside villas of the Early Byzantine period have also been
fourth to the sixth centuries, at the end of which it was destroyed
discovered in Crete, such as the complex in western Crete at Brysses,
by fire.35
in Apokoronas, which had storage areas and workshops dating to
In the Peloponnesos, with the opportunity presented during
the end of the sixth and beginning of the seventh centuries,38 and in
the construction of the new highway between Leuktron and
southern Crete at the modern city of Moires, near Gortyn. The
Sparta, a building complex was excavated which can also be
excavated portion of the villa at Moires includes a bath, of which
identified as a rural villa dating to the fifth–sixth centuries A.D.36
the three main halls were found as well as the corridor feeding the
(fig. 27). The structure was found approximately 2½ miles (4 km)
hypocaust. A court or residential area to the west of the bath was
northwest of Sparta at the Ekklesies site, near Boutianoi, Lakonia,
also discovered, as well as a long storage magazine, likely for the
just a short distance to the east of the
Eurotas River and beside the road
connecting Sparta and northern Lakonia
with Megalopole and southern Arkadia, a
route used in both antiquity and
Byzantine times. This road constitutes a
portion of one of the most important
routes, diagonally crossing the western
Peloponnesos, joining Lakonia with Eleia
(Olympia). The site of this building
complex is also near a second road that
leaves Sparta to the north (toward
Arkadia/Tegea), which was part of the
diagonal route crossing the eastern
Peloponnesos.37 At this site intensive
archaeological exploration over the past
few years has brought to light numerous
building remains, primarily of the Early
Byzantine period, which include a large
bath complex and part of a mosaic floor.
The main part of the villa unearthed so far
is square in plan, covers more than 4,000
square feet, and includes individual square
rooms. Details of its construction indicate
that there was a second story, while the
spaces of the first floor appear to have been
used for storage; in one of the rooms, five
storage jars were preserved in situ. The
villa rustica appears to have been part of a
very large complex, according to the
evidence gathered so far, as more buildings
relating to it have been uncovered with
storage and workshop areas, a wine press,
and a lime kiln. It is interesting to note
that there was a network of ceramic pipes
and channels throughout the complex,
carefully made of square ceramic tiles,
which led water to the workshop areas.
Two miles down the road toward Sparta,
in an area that was intensively used in the
Fig. 27 | Early Byzantine rural villa at the Ekklesies site, Lakonia.
Early Christian period, another site has
| 39 |
Fig. 28 | Late Byzantine workshop for the production of building materials at the Tsikare site, Thessaly.
storage of wine. Excavation data indicates that there was an initial
phase of the bath dating to the fifth century, and a second building
phase in the area of the residence that extended at least until the
beginning of the seventh century. As excavations have not been
completed, it is still uncertain whether or not the whole complex is
part of a small village that developed on the periphery of Gortyn,39
the island’s most important city and capital throughout Late
Antiquity until the Arab conquest in 824–27.
These examples of rural villas from Macedonia, the
Peloponnesos, and Crete, as well as other finds in Greece, date to
the Early Byzantine period and appear to have survived until the
sixth century and perhaps the beginning of the seventh.40
A twelfth-century farmstead discovered in Central Greece
during improvements to the Kamena Bourla–Mendenitsa section
of the highway between Athens and Thessalonike41 provides
invaluable data for similar constructions in Greece during the
Middle Byzantine period.42 Remains were found of a building
complex with rooms arranged in two wings and a large courtyard
bordered by a rough stone wall. The plan of the building is the
result of two different building phases. To the first phase belongs a
three-part rectangular structure,43 which in the second phase was
| 40 |
extended with the addition of rooms on the west and south and
with the creation of the court, giving the structure its final form.
The portion of the complex that has been excavated includes a
large wine press with a collection tank, a workshop area, what was
probably a tannery for the manufacture of wineskins, and
rudimentary residential spaces.
Recent excavations during the construction of new roads have
uncovered two examples of an interesting category of workshop,
one that produced building materials, as very few examples have
been discovered to date in Greece. The kiln, whether used for
baking bricks or roof tiles, is of substantial size, and its floor built
in such a way as to withstand the weight of the materials to be
fired. Brick-making facilities, due to their kilns and the space they
occupied, had to be located outside cities, and were often found
near city entrances, roads, rivers, or harbors to facilitate easy
transportation. Typical examples from the Balkans are two similar
complexes, one in Oltina, Romania, beside the Danube River, and
one outside Prilep (in modern-day FYROM).44
A workshop for the production of building materials was
recently uncovered less than a mile north of Sparta, near the
modern settlement of Kokkinorache, during construction of the
Fig. 29 | Kiln of the Late Byzantine
workshop at the Tsikare site, Thessaly.
new highway between Leuktron and Sparta.45 It comprises a large,
rectangular, two-level kiln,46 the lower space for fuel and the upper
one for firing. A rectangular building was also part of the complex,
also of large size, which contained both enclosed and semi-enclosed
spaces serving the workshop’s fabricating and storage needs.
Ceramic pipes supplied the workshop with water, and it had a
large rectangular water reservoir. The construction and use of the
workshop date from the tenth to the twelfth century,47 and could
be linked to the contemporary development of medieval Sparta,
the “Lakedaimonia” of Byzantine texts.48
A second similar, but much larger, workshop was found at
Tsikare in Thessaly during the construction of the new E 65
highway of Central Greece (fig. 28). The site is approximately 2½
miles (4 km) from Meteora, next to the Salambrias tributary of
the Peneios River. This impressive industrial complex for the
production of building materials covers more than 17,000 square
feet, and has five large two-story ceramic kilns49 of a square plan
(figs. 18, 29). The central support in each kiln’s fuel chamber
created two parallel corridors that led to two vaulted passages for
supplying the kiln with fuel.50 The corridors have brick vaulting
that supports the overhead floor of the firing chamber.51 The
construction of the complex dates to the Late Byzantine period,
but it continued to be used into the sixteenth and seventeenth
centuries, the heyday of the Meteora’s monasteries.52
The restructuring of urban life during the transition between
Late Antiquity and the Early Middle Ages is one of the prime
subjects of current research. Settlements of the Early Byzantine
period crowded around fortified positions and ecclesiastical
centers,53 while villages gradually transformed into important
organizational features and became the primary tax units of the
Byzantine state.54 The plethora of cemeteries and settlement
remains known both from excavations and from surface surveys
in mainland Greece and the islands precludes any listing in the
present short overview. The overall picture that emerges from
recent archaeological studies is that coastal cities remained densely
settled until the sixth or middle of the seventh century, and that
gradually small agricultural settlements increase throughout Late
Antiquity.55 The cause of the increasing importance of large
landholdings and the transformation of villages into large
possessions of lay owners or monasteries beginning in the eleventh
century is a puzzle to scholars.56 Surface surveys in several regions
of Greece have indicated the sites of village settlements; for
example, in Lakonia, in an area northeast of Sparta, sites the size
of villages have been found dating from the ninth to the
eighteenth century. Two of these were probably founded in the
ninth century, or at least by the tenth century, and continued to
exist during the Ottoman period, until the first half of the
eighteenth century. Villages that were occupied only briefly have
also been found.57 Future study of finds from excavations and
their relation to the data gathered during surface surveys will aid
in the creation of a map of Greece with a distribution of the
various settlement units of the Byzantine era by period. In any
case, it appears that villages continued to be the most important
settlements during the Late Byzantine period as well, although
their economic function is obscured by the role of large estates.58
Of the numerous coastal settlements of the Early Byzantine
period, a good example is one currently being excavated in Epiros,
on the Ladochori Plain east of the new harbor of Hegoumenitsa.
The settlement was founded during the period of the Pax Romana,
which favored the development of installations on the coast, and
was destroyed in the mid-sixth century, most likely by the
Ostrogoths of Totila. The section that has been uncovered reveals
partially paved streets, houses of a rectangular plan with rooms
arranged around open paved spaces, many with two stories, and a
| 41 |
| 42 |
Fig. 30 | Ground plans of houses with many Late Byzantine granaries at the sites of
Semantra and Kampoudi, Chalkidike.
Fig. 31 | Early Byzantine ceramic workshop in Mastichari, Kos.
few larger, wealthier ones with mosaic floors. Also unearthed are
bath complexes, sections of a likely five-aisle basilica, and remains of
harbor installations. Commercial traffic in the harbor was brisk, as
indicated by the large number of coins and amphorae discovered.59
Of the short-lived settlements, two agricultural settlements of
the thirteenth—fourteenth centuries are indicative (fig. 30). They
were discovered in 2006 during work on a country road in
Chalkidike, about which a wealth of study material is provided by
the archives of the monasteries of Mt. Athos.60 One of them was
found at the southern entrance of the modern settlement of
Semantra, which is identified with the Byzantine village of Karkara,
a name preserved until 1956. The village’s houses were loosely
arranged on terraces, and a number of granaries were dug into the
sides of the hill, bordered on the east and west by two gullies. A
sizeable amount of slag and smaller artifacts of everyday life have
been collected from this area, including coins from the thirteenth
century, iron tools, arrowheads, some bronze and glass jewelry, as
well as a large number of ceramics, of which an impressive number
are glazed. The houses were far apart, as they were surrounded by
roofed storerooms for grain and animal fodder, stables, open and
partially enclosed work spaces, and vegetable gardens. Interestingly,
no facilities for mining activities came to light, yet the thick layer of
ash that covered part of the hill and the mass of slag are evidence
enough of extensive secondary metallurgical activity in an area far
removed from mining regions. This, in combination with the
presence of a great quantity of glazed pottery and the large capacity
of the granaries, has led the excavators to conclude that this was an
unusually wealthy settlement.61
The second excavated village is in the area of Kampoudi. Its
organization is analogous to that of the previous one, with houses
set far apart, simple, one-room constructions surrounded by dugout granaries. Despite the similarities in the arrangement and form
of its houses, this second village does not have any of the other
characteristics of the first, such as a large quantity of glazed pottery
and evidence of the secondary processing of metals. It is probably
a typical agricultural village, which must have been developed at
the end of the twelfth century and abandoned in the second half
of the thirteenth. This typical picture of an agricultural production
space is completed by a series of water mills that were developed
along the Olynthios River near Kampoudi.
The Byzantines, in addition to their use of overland routes,
lived, fought, and traded at sea. The Aegean island chain
connected Constantinople and the coast of Asia Minor by various
commercial, military, and pilgrimage routes. From the earliest
Christian times, pilgrims are known to have embarked from the
harbors of the western Mediterranean and passed through those of
the southern Peloponnesos, the Cycladic islands, Rhodes, and
Cyprus, to reach the Holy Land.62 Innumerable sites have been
excavated on the Greek islands that bear witness to habitation and
commercial activities during the Byzantine period. Only a few of
the more recent finds can be mentioned here.
The small Dodekanese island of Leipsoi lies between Leros and
Patmos, opposite the Ionian coast of Asia Minor. Near its coast a
pottery factory was excavated in 2008–10.63 In the section excavated
four kilns were revealed, each with a rectangular plan but of
different dimensions, two storage spaces, intact amphorae, and a large
number of sherds of a variety of types of vessels, the most important
of which are twenty uniform amphorae.64 This regional ceramic
workshop dates to the middle of the seventh century, a particularly
turbulent period in the Aegean, while its ideal coastal location
would have facilitated the immediate distribution of its products,
especially since the island lies on the sea route to and from
Constantinople. Together with finds from neighboring islands, in
particular the large standing vaulted complex at the Tholoi site on
Agathonesi,65 which has correctly been interpreted as a storage
facility, it provides important evidence for further study of the role of
the constellation of small islands in Byzantium’s maritime themata.
Farther south the island of Kos, close to the coastline of Asia
Minor, had a long tradition of ceramic production, and in particular
the production of amphorae. Over the past thirty years more than
330 rescue excavations have been undertaken by the respective
Ephorates of Antiquities, which have provided invaluable evidence
for the study of Koan ceramics in the Late Antique and Early
Byzantine periods. Among other finds, two ceramic workshops of
the Early Byzantine period were found in coastal areas.66
One of the workshops was found near the modern village of
Kardamaina —ancient Alasarna—on the south side of the island.
This particular site is known as Tsoukalaria, Kaminia, and
Liopyra, toponyms which denote ceramic workshops and olive
presses, and where, until the mid 1950s, a traditional pottery
workshop continued to exist. The Byzantine workshop produced
cooking wares, perfume bottles, and wheel-made oil lamps, but the
primary product was amphorae.67 According to the excavators, the
workshop may date to the middle and second half of the seventh
century, like the workshop on Leipsoi, perhaps into the eighth
century. Further study of similar finds is particularly important as
they relate to the abandonment of coastal settlements in the
Aegean in response to the Arab threat.
The second workshop was found in the north of the island at
the site of Kostaina, near modern Mastichari (fig. 31). It is a large
installation, in operation from the third to the seventh centuries,
made up of four kilns of different types and auxiliary rooms. It
produced mainly amphorae,68 oil lamps, and coarse ceramics. At
the same time, it also produced building materials such as square
bricks with fingerprint indentations and roof tiles. Misfired bricks
were used to build the walls of the auxiliary rooms, while a large
quantity of roof tiles produced at the site were also collected. One
of the most interesting features of this workshop is the
simultaneous use of different types of kilns to produce building
materials as well as commercial amphorae.
Finds from archaeological research in Greece, which are
constantly being enriched, provide invaluable evidence of the
development of the countryside and the evolution of the economy
in the Byzantine state through its long history, both within
Greece and beyond. Land use is similar throughout the eastern
Mediterranean, the relationship between villages and large land
holdings was everywhere similar, and overland and sea trading
routes were of paramount importance to every part of the empire.
1
Avramea 2002.
See the bibliography for the Roman and Early Byzantine periods in Avramea 1996.
3
Adam-Veleni 2003.
4
Koder and Hild 1976, 90–100; Avramea 1974, 71–117.
5
Marki 1991.
6
The building is 88 feet long and 22 feet wide.
7
Marki 1991.
8
Sdrolia and Androudis 2012.
9
Anna Komnene 2001, 154.
10
Decourt 1990, 95, 107ff.
11
For ancient Meliboia, see Drosos 1997, 15ff.
12
Sdrolia 2003, 406, figs. 4–5. For the monasteries of Kissabos, see Mamaloukos and
Sdrolia 2006.
13
Koder and Hild 1976, 252.
14
Dina 2003; Dina et al. 2001–4; Deriziotis and Dina 2012, 169.
15
Laiou 2002a, 319.
16
The fortified group was founded at the site of a way station along the road between
Thessalonike and Tempe, probably at the site of the mansio or mutatio Anamon:
Marki 2008.
2
17
In a rectangular space measuring 34 x 17 feet (10.40 x 5.30 m) a system of three
wine press-reservoirs and two collection tanks was created. The two parallel storage
magazines measure 68 x 17 feet (20.70 x 5.30 m), and the third measures 68 x 13
feet (20.50 x 3.90 m).
18
Marki 2008; Cheimonopoulou 2004.
19
Pausanias 1990, 179–80. X, 36,1.
20
The dimensions of the reservoir-press are 21 x 15 feet (6.50 x 4.50 m), and of the
collection tank 6 x 3 feet (1.80 x 0.90 m).
21
Gerousi 2007.
22
Kassianos Bassos 1895, Book 6, Ch. 1,3.
23
Bakourou et al. 1998, 221; Bakourou 2009, 307–10.
24
Mexia 2006b.
25
Kazhdan and Nesbitt 1991.
26
Cheimonopoulou 2004.
27
Ghini-Tsofopoulou 2001, mainly 151, 168, 183; Pantelidou-Alexiadou 2005a;
Pantelidou-Alexiadou 2005b.
28
Ghini-Tsofopoulou et al. 2012, 35–36.
29
Tsigarida et al. 2007, 327–28, fig. 11.
30
Parsons 1936; Spain 1987.
31
Morrisson and Sodini 2002, 177, with relevant bibliography.
32
Marki 2010.
33
In the northeastern section of Early Christian Thessalonike an important number of
luxurious private houses have been discovered, the plans of which include triclinia,
dating to the end of the fourth and beginning of the fifth centuries.
34
Tsouris et al. 1999, 726–27; Tsouris et al. 2000, 906–7; Tsouris et al. 2001–4, 762, 804.
35
Tsiapali 2008; Tsiapali 2011.
36
Eleftheriou and Skagkos 2012.
37
Kourinou 2000, 70.
38
Andrianakis 2012b, 338.
39
Sythiakakis and Vassilakis 2010.
40
Morrisson and Sodini 2002, 177; according to Sodini, similar villas are rare in the sixth
century.
41
Gialouri 2006.
42
For the agricultural economy in general, see Lefort 2002, especially 240–41.
43
Dimensions: 47 x 17 feet (14.30 x 5.20 m).
44
Ousterhout 1999, 128–32; Theocharidou 1985–86, 97–112, and fig. 15, where the
experienced architect created a typological classification of kilns.
45
See the aforementioned rural villa at Ekklesies near Boutianoi, Lakonia.
46
Dimensions: 20 x 8 feet (6.14 x 2.42 m).
47
Armeni et al. 2012.
48
Laiou 2002b, 747–48.
49
The dimensions of the five kilns are as follows: A: 10½ x 9 feet (3.18 x 2.80 m); B: 12
x c. 7 feet (3.65 x c. 2.23 m; partially preserved); C: 10 x 8 feet (3 x 2.54 m); D: 12 x
10 feet (3.74 x 3 m); E: 13 x 11½ feet (3.90 x 3.50 m).
50
Their width varies from 20 to 25 inches (0.50 to 0.65 m), their height from 12 to 21 ½
inches (0.30 to 0.55 m), while the distance between them varies from 23 to 27
inches (0.60 to 0.70 m).
51
Type ∫Ë according to the typology of Theocharidou 1985–86, fig. 15 (see note 44).
Ovens with two supply openings exist from Roman times, Cuomo di Caprio 1979,
plans 5.2 and 5.7.
52
I thank the Director of the 19th Ephorate of Byzantine Antiquities, K. Mantzana, who
will publish the complex, for sharing her information and photographs.
53
Brogiolo and Ward-Perkins 1999; Dunn 1994.
54
Kaplan 1992; Wickham 2005, 442–518.
55
Morrisson and Sodini 2002,175–81.
56
Lefort 2002, 284–90.
57
Armstrong 2002.
58
Laiou 2002a, 317–19.
59
I thank B. Papadopoulou, Director of the 8th Ephorate of Byzantine Antiquities, for
providing the evidence from her dissertation on Early Christian Epiros (4th–7th c.).
60
Laiou 2002a, 326–28.
61
Tsanana et al. 2013. I thank the excavators for supplying this information.
62
Avramea 2002, 77–88.
63
Papavassiliou et al. 2011.
64
They are an imitation of the most common Early Byzantine type of amphora, the LR1.
65
Triantafyllidis 2006.
66
Didioumi 2011.
67
Sixty-seven percent of the amphorae belong to a type similar to LR1 and twenty-five
percent are of a type belonging to the so-called “Byzantine Globular Amphorae” group.
68
The amphorae belong to the type LR3 B2 and B4, or are imitations of the type
Ephesus 56 and, in smaller quantities, imitations of LRA1.
| 43 |
Bibliography–Abbreviations
∞∞∞. ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ∞Ó¿ÏÂÎÙ· ÂÍ ∞ıËÓÒÓ.
Abadie-Reynal 1989. C. Abadie-Reynal.
“Céramique et commerce dans le bassin
égéen du IVe au VIIe s.” In Lefort and
Morrisson1989, 143–59
Abadie-Reynal 1998. “Un exemple de
régression du phénomène urbain: Argos
aux IVe–VIIe siècles ap. J.-C.” In Pariente
and Touchais 1998, 397–404.
Abadie-Reynal 2007. C. Abadie-Reynal. La
céramique romaine d’Argos (fin du IIe siècle
avant J.-C.–fin du IVe siècle après J.-C.).
Études pélonnésiennes, XIII. Athens, 2007.
∞µª∂. ∞گ›ÔÓ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ªÓËÌ›ˆÓ ∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜.
Acheimastou-Potamianou 1991.
M. Acheimastou-Potamianou. “The
Basilissa Anna Palaiologina of Arta and the
Monastery of Vlacherna.” πn Proceedings
of the Athens Symposium 1988 “Women
and Byzantine Monasticism,” edited by
J. Y. Perreault, 43–49. Athens, 1991.
Acheimastou-Potamianou 2009.
M. Acheimastou-Potamianou. ∏ μÏ·¯¤ÚÓ·
Ù˘ ÕÚÙ·˜, ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜. Athens, 2009.
Acheimastou-Potamianou and
Triantaphyllopoulos 1975.
M. Acheimastou-Potamianou and D.
Triantaphyllopoulos. “◊ÂÈÚÔ˜. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿,
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈο Î·È ÓÂfiÙÂÚ· ÌÓËÌ›· ∏›ÚÔ˘.”
ADelt 30 (1975): Chronika B1, 221–35.
Acheimastou-Potamianou et al. 1973–74.
M. Acheimastou-Potamianou, P.
Vocotopoulos, and D. Triantaphyllopoulos.
“μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿, ªÂ۷ȈÓÈο Î·È ¡ÂÒÙÂÚ·
ªÓËÌ›· ∏›ÚÔ˘.” ADelt 29 (1973–7):
Chronika B2, 598–626.
Adam-Veleni 2001. P. Adam-Veleni. “∏
‰Âο¯ÚÔÓË ÔÚ›· ÂÚÁ·ÛÈÒÓ ÛÙËÓ ∞Ú¯·›·
∞ÁÔÚ¿ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ 1989–1999.” In
∞Ú¯·›· ∞ÁÔÚ¿ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ 1, ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
¢ÈËÌÂÚ›‰·˜ ÁÈ· ÙȘ ÂÚÁ·Û›Â˜ ÙˆÓ ÂÙÒÓ 1989–
1999 (∫Ú˘Ù‹ ™ÙÔ¿, 7 Î·È 8 πÔ˘Ï›Ô˘ 1999),
edited by P. Adam-Veleni, 15–38.
Thessalonike, 2001.
Adam-Veleni 2003. P. Adam-Veleni.
“∞ÛÚÔ‚¿ÏÙ·. ™˘ÁÎÚfiÙËÌ·
·˘ÙÔÎÚ·ÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ ¯ÚfiÓˆÓ. ∞ÁÚÔÈΛ·ÛÙ·ıÌfi˜-·Ó‰Ô¯Â›Ô.” In ∞Ú¯·›Â˜ ·ÁÚÔÈ˘
Û ۇÁ¯ÚÔÓÔ˘˜ ‰ÚfiÌÔ˘˜, edited by P. AdamVeleni, E. Poulaki, and K. Tzanavari,
109–14. Exh. cat. Athens, 2003.
ADelt. ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfiÓ ¢ÂÏÙ›ÔÓ.
∞∂. ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋ ∂ÊËÌÂÚ›˜.
∞∂ª£. ΔÔ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ŒÚÁÔ ÛÙË ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· ηÈ
ÛÙË £Ú¿ÎË.
Ahrweiler 1966. H. Ahrweiler. Byzance et la
mèr. La marine de guerre. La politique et les
institutions maritimes de Byzance aux VIIe–
XVe siècles. Paris, 1966.
Ahrweiler 1975. H. Ahrweiler. L’idéologie
politique de l’empire byzantin. Collection
SUP. L’Historien, 20. Paris, 1975.
Ahrweiler 1977. H. Ahrweiler. “The
Geography of the Iconoclast World.” In
Bryer and Herrin 1977, 21–27.
AJA. American Journal of Archaeology.
Åkerström-Hougen 1974. G. ÅkerströmHougen. The Calendar and Hunting Mosaics
of the Villa of the Falconer in Argos. A Study
in Early Byzantine Iconography. Acta Instituti
Atheniensis Regni Sueciae, XXIII.
| 276 |
Stockholm, 1974.
Albani 1996. J. Albani. “Kastoria.” The Grove
Dictionary of Art, edited by J. Turner, vol.
17, 838–41. New York, 1996.
Aletras 2012. Z. Aletras.
“ŒÓ· ÌÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ÏÔ˘ÙÚfi
ÛÙÔ ∏Ú¿ÎÏÂÈÔ.” In Andrianakis et al. 2012,
323–31.
Alexiou 1960. S. Alexiou. “ΔÔ ¢Ô˘ÎÈÎfiÓ
·Ó¿ÎÙÔÚÔÓ ÙÔ˘ ÿӉ·ÎÔ˜.” ∫Chron 14
(1960): 102–8.
Allamani-Souri 2003. V. Allamani-Souri.
“Brief History of Imperial Thessaloniki as
Derived from Epigraphic and
Archaeological Evidence.” In Roman
Thessaloniki, edited by D. V. Grammenos,
80–91. Exh. cat. Thessaloniki
Archaeological Museum Publications, no.
1. Thessaloniki, 2003.
Allamani and Apostolou 1992. V. Allamani
and M. Apostolou. “™ˆÛÙÈΤ˜ ·Ó·Ûηʤ˜
ÛÙËÓ fiÏË Ù˘ μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜.” ∞∂ª£ 6 (1992):
93–110.
Allen 1979. P. Allen. “The Justinianic
plague.” Byzantion 49 (1979): 5–20.
Ameling et al. 2004. Inscriptiones Judaicae
Orientis, vol. I: Eastern Europe, Texts & Studies
in Ancient Judaism, edited by W. Ameling,
D. Noy, A. Panayotov, and H. Bloedhom.
Texte und Studien zum antiken Judentum,
101. Tübingen, 2004.
Anagnostakis 1989. I. Anagnostakis. “ΔÔ
ÂÂÈÛfi‰ÈÔ Ù˘ ¢·ÓÈËÏ›‰·˜. ¶ÏËÚÔÊÔڛ˜
ηıËÌÂÚÈÓÔ‡ ‚›Ô˘ ‹ Ì˘ıÔÏ·ÛÙÈο
ÛÙÔȯ›·;” In Angelidi 1989, 375–90.
Anagnostakis 1996. I. Anagnostakis.
“∂ÏÏ·‰Èο ·Ú·Ì‡ıÈ· Î·È ÂÏÏ·‰È΋
·Ú·Ì˘ı›· ÛÙÔ μ˘˙¿ÓÙÈÔ ÙÔ˘ 10Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ·.”
In ∂ÏÈ¿ Î·È Ï¿‰È. ¢’ ΔÚÈ‹ÌÂÚÔ ∂ÚÁ·Û›·˜,
∫·Ï·Ì¿Ù·, 7–9 ª·˝Ô˘ 1996, 121–50. Athens,
1996.
Anagnostakis 2001. I. Anagnostakis.
“¶ÂÚÈÔ‡ÛÈÔ˜ Ï·fi˜.” In √È ÛÎÔÙÂÈÓÔ› ·ÈÒÓ˜
ÙÔ˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙ›Ô˘ (7Ô˜–9Ô˜ ·È.), edited by
E. Kountoura-Galake, 325–46. ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú.
∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. ¢ÈÂıÓ‹
™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 9. Athens, 2001.
Anagnostakis 2004a. I. Anagnostakis. “∞fi
ÙËÓ ÂÈÎfiÓ· Ù˘ ÌÔÓ·¯‹˜ ∂˘ÊÚÔÛ‡Ó˘ ÛÙÔÓ
μ›Ô ÙˆÓ ÔÛ›ˆÓ ÙÔ˘ ªÂÁ¿ÏÔ˘ ™ËÏ·›Ô˘: ∏
ÈÛÙÔÚ›· ÌÈ·˜ ηٷÛ΢‹˜.” In √ ÌÔÓ·¯ÈÛÌfi˜
ÛÙËÓ ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ, 4Ô˜–15Ô˜ ·È., edited by
V. Konti, 147–98. ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ.
μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. ¢ÈÂıÓ‹ ™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 14. Athens,
2004.
Anagnostakis 2004b. I. Anagnostakis.
“∫Ô˘ÎÔ‡‚·È Î·È ÙÚÈÁ¤ÚˆÓ Ô›ÓÔ˜. ™Ù·Ê‡ÏÈ·
Î·È ÎÚ·ÛÈ¿ ÛÙÔÓ ∂˘ÛÙ¿ıÈÔ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.”
In ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈÎfi ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ √›ÓÔÓ ÈÛÙÔÚÒ πππ, Δ’
∞ÌÂÏ·Óı›ÛÌ·Ù·, edited by G. A. Pikoulas,
75–109. ∞thens, 2004.
Anagnostakis 2007. I. Anagnostakis. “H
ÂÏ·ÈÔÊfiÚÔ˜ ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ˜ ÛÙÔ˘˜ ̤ÛÔ˘˜
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜.” In Ὁ δὲ τόπος…
ἐλαιοφόρος’. ∏ ·ÚÔ˘Û›· Ù˘ ÂÏÈ¿˜ ÛÙËÓ
¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ, 61–73. Athens, 2007.
Anagnostakis 2012. I. Anagnostakis.
“ªÔÓÂÌ‚·Û›·–§·Î‰·›ÌˆÓ: °È· ÌÈ·
Ù˘ÔÏÔÁ›· ·ÓÙÈ·ÏfiÙËÙ·˜ Î·È ÁÈ· ÙËÓ
∫˘Úȷ΋ ·ÚÁ›· ÛÙȘ fiÏÂȘ.” In
Kiousopoulou 2012, 101–37.
Anagnostakis and Brother Ioustinos 1985.
I. Anagnostakis and Brother Ioustinos. √È
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓÈΛ˜ fiÛÈÔÈ ™˘ÌÂÒÓ Î·È £Âfi‰ˆÚÔ˜:
ÚÒÙÔÈ Î·ÙÔÈ΋ÙÔÚ˜ ÙÔ˘ Õıˆ Î·È Ù˘
·ÓÂÏÏ¿‰Ô˜ ÔÏÈÔ‡¯ÔÈ. Karyes, Mount
Athos, 1985.
Anagnostakis and Lampropoulou 2002.
I. Anagnostakis and A. Lampropoulou.
“∫·Ù·ÛÙÔÏ‹: ªÈ· ÌÔÚÊ‹ ÂÓÔ¯‹˜ ÛÙËÓ
¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ ÙÔ˘ 9Ô˘ Î·È 10Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ·.” In
∞ÓÔ¯‹ Î·È Î·Ù·ÛÙÔÏ‹ ÛÙÔ˘˜ ª¤ÛÔ˘˜ ÃÚfiÓÔ˘˜:
ªÓ‹ÌË §¤ÓÔ˘ ª·˘ÚÔÌÌ¿ÙË, edited by K.
Nikolaou, 47–61. ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ.
μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. ¢ÈÂıÓ‹ ™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 10. Athens,
2002.
Anagnostakis and Poulou-Papadimitriou
1997. I. Agangnostakis and N. PoulouPapadimitriou. “∏ ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ªÂÛÛ‹ÓË.” ™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 11 (1997): 299–322.
Anagnostakis et al. 2002. I. Anagnostakis,
V. Konti, A. Lampropoulou, and A.
Panopoulou. “Program of historical
geography of the Institute of Byzantine
Studies ‘ÃÒÚÔ˜ Î·È ÂÓfiÙËÙ· Ù˘ ¢˘ÙÈ΋˜
¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓ‹ÛÔ˘.” In Themelis and Konti
2002, 65–81.
Anastos 1957. M. Anastos. “The transfer of
Illyricum, Calabria, and Sicily to the
jurisdiction of the patriarchate of
Constantinople in 732–33.” In Silloge
bizantina in onore di Silvio Giuseppe Mercati
= Studi Bizantini e Neoellenici 9 (1957):
14–31.
Andreadaki-Vlazaki 2012. 2000–2010, ∞fi ÙÔ
·Ó·ÛηÊÈÎfi ¤ÚÁÔ ÙˆÓ ∂ÊÔÚÂÈÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ,
edited by M. Andreadaki-Vlazaki. Athens,
2012.
Andreou 1997a. I. Andreou. “Urban
Organisation.” In Sakellariou 1997, 94–100.
Andreou 1997b. I. Andreou. “∏ ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›·
Ù˘ ∞̂ڷΛ·˜ Î·È Ë ÔÏÈÔÚΛ· ÙÔ˘ 189
.Ã.” In ∞ÊȤڈ̷ ÛÙÔÓ ¡. G. L. Hammond,
17–35. ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 7.
Thessalonike, 1997.
Andreou 2007. I. Andreou. “ΔÔÔÁÚ·ÊÈο
Î·È ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈο ¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘.” In Zachos
2007, vol. 1, 231–62.
Andrews 2006. K. Andrews. Castles of the
Morea [1953], revised ed. Gennadeion
Monographs, IV. Princeton, N.J., 2006.
Andrianakis 1991. M. Andrianakis.
“¡¤· ÛÙÔȯ›· Î·È ·fi„ÂȘ ÁÈ· ÙËÓ
ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ Ù¤¯ÓË Ù˘ ∫Ú‹Ù˘ ηٿ ÙË μ’
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” In ¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ ÙÔ˘ ™Ù’
¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ∫ÚËÙÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ, Chania
1986, vol. II, 9–34. Chania, 1991.
Andrianakis 2010. M. G ∞ndrianakis. “ΔÔ
¤ÚÁÔ Ù˘ ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋˜ ∂ÈÙÚÔ‹˜
·Ó¿‰ÂÈ͢ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ Î·È ‚ÂÓÂÙÛÈ¿ÓÈÎÔ˘
Ô¯˘ÚˆÌ·ÙÈÎÔ‡ ÂÚÈ‚fiÏÔ˘ ÷ӛˆÓ.” In
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ŒÚÁÔ ∫Ú‹Ù˘ 1. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο Ù˘ 1˘
Û˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛ˘, ƒ¤ı˘ÌÓÔ 28–30 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2008,
edited by M. Andrianakis and I. Tzachili,
93–107. Rethymnon, 2010.
Andrianakis 2012a. M Andrianakis. “∏
ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ·ÎÚfiÔÏË ÙˆÓ Ã·Ó›ˆÓ.”
In ∏ Ô¯˘ÚˆÌ·ÙÈ΋ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÛÙÔ ∞ÈÁ·›Ô ηÈ
Ô ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎfi˜ ÔÈÎÈÛÌfi˜ ∞Ó·‚¿ÙÔ˘ Ã›Ô˘. ÛԘ,
26–28 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2008, edited by A.
Kavvadia, 75–90. Chios, 2012.
Andrianakis 2012b. M. Andrianakis. “28Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” In
Andreadaki-Vlazaki 2012, 335–40.
Andrianakis 2013. M. Andrianakis. “∏
ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÛÙËÓ ∫Ú‹ÙË Ù˘ μ’
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘.” In ¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ ÙÔ˘ π’
¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ∫ÚËÙÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ, Chania
2006, vol. I, 309–61. Chania, 2013.
Andrianakis et al. 2012. ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfiÓ ŒÚÁÔÓ
∫Ú‹Ù˘ 2. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο Ù˘ 2˘ ™˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛ˘.
ƒ¤ı˘ÌÓÔ, 26–28 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2010, edited by
M. Andrianakis, P. Varthalitou, and I.
Tzachili. Rethymnon, 2012.
Andrianakis et al. 2012a. M. Andrianakis,
I. Volanakis, and Ai. Mylopotamitaki. 13Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” In
Andreadaki-Vlazaki 2012, 327–34.
Androudis and Athanasoulis 2004.
P. Androudis and D. Athanasoulis.
“¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙËÓ ÔÈÎÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ ÈÛÙÔÚ›·
ÙÔ˘ ‘‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ÏÔ˘ÙÚÔ‡’ ÙÔ˘ ∫¿ÛÙÚÔ˘
¡·˘¿ÎÙÔ˘.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘ μ’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ ∞ÈÙˆÏԷηÚÓ·Ó›·˜. ∞ÁÚ›ÓÈÔ, 29, 30,
31 ª·ÚÙ›Ô˘ 2002, edited by A. Paliouras,
vol. II, 515–34, Agrinion, 2004.
Angelidi 1989. ∏ ηıËÌÂÚÈÓ‹ ˙ˆ‹ ÛÙÔ
μ˘˙¿ÓÙÈÔ. ΔÔ̤˜ Î·È Û˘Ó¤¯ÂȘ ÛÙËÓ
ÂÏÏËÓÈÛÙÈ΋ Î·È ÚˆÌ·˚΋ ·Ú¿‰ÔÛË, ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
ÙÔ˘ ∞’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘ (15–17
™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1988), edited by Ch. Angelidi.
∞thens, 1989.
Angelidi 2012. Ch. Angelidi. “Basile
Lécapène. ‘Deux ou trois choses que je sais
de lui.’” In Pour l’amour de Byzance.
Hommage à Paolo Odorico, edited by Ch.
Gastgeber, Ch. Messis, D. Ioan Mureşan,
and F. Ronconi, 11–26. Eastern and
Central European Studies, 3. Frankfurt am
Main, 2013.
Angelou 1984. Nicholas of Methone:
Refutation of Proclus’ Elements of Theology,
edited by A. D. Angelou. Corpus
philosophorum Medii Aevi. Philosophi
Byzantini, 1. Athens, 1984.
Angold 1984. M. Angold. “Archons and
Dynasts: local aristocracies and the cities of
the later Byzantine Empire.” In The
Byzantine Aristocracy, IX–XIII centuries, edited
by M. Angold, 236–53. BAR. Int. Ser., 221.
Oxford, 1984
Anna Komnene 2001. Annae Comnenae
Alexias, edited by D. R. Reinsch and A.
Kambylis. CFHB, 40/1. Berlin and New
York, 2001.
Antonakatou and Mavros 1976.
D. Antonakatou and T. Mavros. ∂ÏÏËÓÈο
ÌÔÓ·ÛÙ‹ÚÈ·. ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ˜. Vol. I. Athens,
1976.
Aravantinos 1988. V. Aravantinos. “∏
Ì˘ÎËÓ·˚΋ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Ù˘ ∫·‰Ì›·˜.
¶ÚÔηٷÚÎÙÈ΋ ·Ó·ÎÔ›ÓˆÛË.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∞’
¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ.
£‹‚·, 10–14 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1986, edited by A.
P. Bekiaris = ∂∂μª 1/1 (1988): 113–36.
Aravantinos 2010. V. Aravantinos. ΔÔ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ªÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô £Ë‚ÒÓ. ∞thens, 2010.
Aravantinos et al. 1999. V. Aravantinos, E.
Vlachogianni, E. Kountouri, A. Charami, A.
Gadolou, V. and A. Konecny. “£’ ∂ÊÔÚ›·
¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ Î·È ∫Ï·ÛÈÎÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.”
ADelt 54 (1999): Chronika B1, 309–32.
Archontopoulos and Katsioti 2007. Th.
Archontopoulos and A. Katsioti. “∏
˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÛÙË ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ fiÏË Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘
·fi ÙÔÓ 11o ·ÈÒÓ· ̤¯ÚÈ ÙËÓ Î·Ù¿ÏË„‹ Ù˘
·fi ÙÔ˘˜ ΔÔ‡ÚÎÔ˘˜ (1522): ªÈ· ÂÎÙ›ÌËÛË
ÙˆÓ ‰Â‰Ô̤ӈÓ.” In City of Rhodes 2007,
vol. I, 454–65.
Arethas 1968. Arethae archiepiscopi
Caesariensis scripta minora, edited by L. G.
Westerink, vol. 1. Bibliotheca Scriptorum
Graecorum et Romanorum Teubneriana.
Scriptores Graeci. Leipzig, 1968.
Armeni et al. 2012. P. Armeni, A. Kotsi, Z.
Bakopanou, and M. Florou. “™ˆÛÙÈ΋
·Ó·Ûηʋ Û ÂÚÁ·ÛÙËÚÈ·Îfi ¯ÒÚÔ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ¯ÚfiÓˆÓ ÛÙËÓ ÂÚÈʤÚÂÈ·
∫ÔÎÎÈÓfiÚÚ·¯Ë˜ §·ÎˆÓ›·˜.” In 1Ô ¢ÈÂıÓ¤˜
™˘Ó¤‰ÚÈÔ, ΔÔ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ŒÚÁÔ ÛÙËÓ
¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ. ΔÚ›ÔÏË, 7–11 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2012
(in press).
Armstrong 1996. P. Armstrong. “Alexios
Komnenos, holy men and monasteries.” In
Alexios I Komnenos. Papers on the Second
Belfast Byzantine International Colloquium,
14–16 April 1989, edited by M. E. Mullett
and D. C. Smythe, 219–31. Belfast, 1996.
Armstrong 2002. P. Armstrong. “The Survey
area in the Byzantine and Ottoman
periods.” In Continuity and change in a
Greek rural landscape: The Laconia Survey,
Vol. I. Methodology and Interpretation, edited
by W. Cavanagh, J. Crouwel, R. W. V.
Catling, and G. Shipley, 339–402. BSA.
Supplementary Volume, 26. London, 2002.
Arvanitopoulos 2004. S. Arvanitopoulos. ∏
¶fiÏË ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿. Ÿ„ÂȘ Ù˘ ÔÚÁ¿ÓˆÛ˘ ηÈ
ÏÂÈÙÔ˘ÚÁ›·˜ ÂÓfi˜ ˘ÛÙÂÚÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ·ÛÙÈÎÔ‡
Û˘ÓfiÏÔ˘ Ì ‚¿ÛË ÙȘ ËÁ¤˜ Î·È Ù· ÎÔÛÌÈο
ÎÙ›ÛÌ·Ù·. Ph.D. dissertation. Athens, 2004,
http://thesis.ekt.gr/thesis Book
Reader/id/22165II page/6/mode/2up.
Arvanitopoulos 2008. S. Arvanitopoulos.
“Δ¿ÊÔÈ Î·È ¤ıÈÌ· ÂÓÙ·ÊÈ·ÛÌÔ‡ ÛÙÔÓ
ª˘ÛÙÚ¿ ηٿ ÙËÓ ˘ÛÙÂÚÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” ∞∂ (2008): 79–120.
ASAtene. Annuario della Scuola Archeologica di
Atene e delle missioni italianie in Oriente.
Aspra-Vardavaki and Emmanuel 2005.
M. Aspra-Vardavaki and M. Emmanuel.
∏ ÌÔÓ‹ Ù˘ ¶·ÓÙ¿Ó·ÛÛ·˜ ÛÙÔÓ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿. √È
ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ ÙÔ˘ 15Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ·. Athens, 2005.
Assimakopoulou-Atzaka 1982.
P. Assimakopoulou-Atzaka. “Early Christian
and Byzantine Magnesia.” In Magnesia, The
story of a civilization, edited by G.
Hourmouziadis, P. Assimakopoulou-Atzaka,
and K. A. Makris, 105–75. Athens, 1982.
Assimakopoulou-Atzaka 1984a.
P. Assimakopoulou-Atzaka. “Δ·
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÛÙÈ·ÓÈο „ËÊȉˆÙ¿ ‰¿Â‰· ÙÔ˘
∞Ó·ÙÔÏÈÎÔ‡ πÏÏ˘ÚÈÎÔ‡.” In Xe CIAC 1984,
vol. 1, 361–442.
Assimakopoulou-Atzaka 1984b.
P. Assimakopoulou-Atzaka. “I mosaici
pavimentali paleocristiani in Grecia.”
CorsRav 31 (1984): 13–75.
Assimakopoulou-Atzaka 1987.
P. Assimakopoulou-Atzaka. ™‡ÓÙ·ÁÌ· ÙˆÓ
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÒÓ „ËÊȉˆÙÒÓ ‰·¤‰ˆÓ Ù˘
∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜. ππ. ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ˜ Î·È ™ÙÂÚ¿
∂ÏÏ¿‰·. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ªÓËÌ›·, 7.
Thessalonike, 1987.
Assimakopoulou-Atzaka 1998.
P. Assimakopoulou-Atzaka. ™‡ÓÙ·ÁÌ· ÙˆÓ
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÒÓ „ËÊȉˆÙÒÓ ‰·¤‰ˆÓ Ù˘
∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜, πππ : ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·–£Ú¿ÎË, 1: Δ·
æËÊȉˆÙ¿ ‰¿Â‰· Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ªÓËÌ›·, 9. Thessalonike, 1998.
Athanasiadis-Novas 1956. T. AthanasiadisNovas. “∏ ¡·‡·ÎÙÔ˜ ˆ˜ ÏÈÌ‹Ó ÙÔ˘
μ˘˙·ÓÙ›Ô˘ ηٿ ÙÔÓ 10Ô ·ÈÒÓ·.” In
¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ ÙÔ˘ £’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË,
12–19 ∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘ 1953, edited by S.
Kyriakides, A. Xyngopoulos, and P. Zepos,
vol. II, 289–95. Athens, 1956.
Athanasopoulou and Douma 2008.
Archaeological Museums and Collections of
Greece, edited by S. Athanasopoulou and
E. Douma. Athens, 2008.
Athanasoulis 1998. D. Athanasoulis.
“§Ô˘ÙÚÈ΋ ÂÁηٿÛÙ·ÛË ÛÙËÓ
∫ÔÎÎÈÓfiÚÚ·¯Ë ™¿ÚÙ˘.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘ ∂’
¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛÈ·ÎÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ. ÕÚÁÔ˜–¡·‡ÏÈÔÓ, 6–10 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘
1995, vol. II, 209–44. ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο.
¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 22. Athens, 1998.
Athanasoulis 2006. D. Athanasoulis. ∏
Ó·Ô‰ÔÌ›· ÛÙËÓ ∂ÈÛÎÔ‹ øϤÓ˘ ηٿ ÙËÓ
̤ÛË Î·È ‡ÛÙÂÚË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô, vol. 1.
Ph. D. dissertation. Thessalonike, 2006.
Athanasoulis 2010. D. Athanasoulis, “√È
πfiÙ˜ ÛÙÔ Clermont, ¤Ó· ÌÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô ÁÈ·
ÙÔ˘˜ ™Ù·˘ÚÔÊfiÚÔ˘˜.” πlissia 5–6 (2009–10):
38–45.
Athanasoulis 2012. D. Athanasoulis. “25Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” In
Andreadaki-Vlazaki 2012, 139–42.
Athanasoulis 2013. D. Athanasoulis. “The
Triangle of Power. Building Projects in the
Metropolitan Area of the Crusader
Principality of the Morea.” In Viewing the
Morea. Land and People in the Late Medieval
Peloponnese, edited by S. Gerstel, 111–51.
Washington, D.C., 2013.
Athanasoulis and Manolessou 2008. D.
Athanasoulis and E. Manolessou. “∞.
∫fiÚÈÓıÔ˜, ∫Ú¿ÓÂÈÔ, ȉÈÔÎÙËÛ›· ∞ÈÎ. ™ÔÊÔ‡.”
∞Delt 63 (2008): Chronika B (forthcoming).
Athanasoulis and Manolessou 2013. D.
Athanasoulis and E. Manolessou. “∏
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ ∫ÔÚÈÓı›·.” In Corinthia and the
Northeast Peloponnesus: Topography and
History from Prehistoric Times until the End of
Antiquity, Kolloquium, Deutsches
Archäologisches Institut, Athen / LZ’ Ephorie,
Korinth. Loutraki, 26.–29.03.2009. Athens,
2013 (in press).
Athanasoulis and Velenis 2013.
D. Athanasoulis and G. Velenis.
“™˘Ì·ÚÔÌ·ÚÙÔ‡ÓÙ· ÂÈÁÚ·ÊÒÓ
∫ÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘.” In ΔÚÈ·ÎÔÛÙfi ΔÚ›ÙÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜
Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 17, 18 Î·È 19 ª·˝Ô˘ 2013.
¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ ∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 17–18. Athens, 2013.
Athanasoulis et al. 2010. D. Athanasoulis,
M. Athanasoula, E. Manolessou, and P.
Meleti. “™‡ÓÙÔÌË ÂÈÛÎfiËÛË Ù˘
·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋˜ ¤Ú¢ӷ˜ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎÒÓ
ηٷÏÔ›ˆÓ ∫ÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘.” ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘ ∏’
¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛÈ·ÎÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ. ∫fiÚÈÓıÔ˜, 26–28 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2008,
167–86. ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 29.
Athens, 2010.
Athanassopoulou-Penna 1979.
V. Athanassopoulou-Penna. “£ËÛ·˘Úfi˜
ÓÔÌÈÛÌ¿ÙˆÓ ÙÔ˘ 6Ô˘ Ì.Ã. ·È. ·fi ÙËÓ
ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ £Ë‚ÒÓ.” ∞∂ (1979): 200–13.
Athens 2001. Byzantine Hours. Works and
Days in Byzantium. Athens – Thessaloniki –
Mystras. Exh. cat. Athens, 2001.
Athens 2006. Afi ÙË ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ™˘ÏÏÔÁ‹
ÛÙÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ªÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô (1884–1930), edited
by O. Gratziou and A. Lazaridou. Exh. cat.
Athens, 2006.
Athens 2010. The Hand of Angelos. An icon
painter in Venetian Crete, edited by M.
Vasilaki. Exh. cat. Athens, 2010.
Aupert 1979. P. Aupert. “Philippes I.
L’edifice avec bain.” BCH 103 (1979):
619–27.
Avignon 2004. ÕÁÈÔÈ ÙÔ˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙ›Ô˘. ∂ÏÏËÓÈΤ˜
ÂÈÎfiÓ˜ Ù˘ μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜. 13Ô˜–17Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜/Saints
de Byzance. Icônes Grecques de Veroia, XIIIe–
XVIIe siècle, edited by J. Albani and A.
Nikolaides. Exh. cat. Athens, 2004.
Avramea 1974. ∞. Avramea. ∏ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
£ÂÛÛ·Ï›· ̤¯ÚÈ ÙÔ˘ 1204. ™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÂȘ ÙËÓ
πÛÙÔÚÈÎ‹Ó °ÂˆÁÚ·Ê›·Ó. μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË ™ÔÊ›·˜
¡. ™·ÚÈfiÏÔ˘, 27. Athens, 1974.
Avramea 1991. A. Avramea. “E·Ú¯È·Î¿
ÈÂÚ¿ ÎÂÈÌ‹ÏÈ· ÛÙËÓ ∫ˆÓÛÙ·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ÔÏË ·fi
ÙÔÓ ª·ÓÔ˘‹Ï ∫ÔÌÓËÓfi.” In ∂˘ÊÚfiÛ˘ÓÔÓ.
∞ÊȤڈ̷ ÛÙÔÓ ª·ÓfiÏË Ã·Ù˙ˉ¿ÎË, vol. I,
29–33. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯. ¢ÂÏÙ., 46. Athens,
1991.
Avramea 1996. ∞. Avramea. “Tracé et
fonction de la Via Egnatia du IIe siècle
avant J. C. au VIe après J. C.” In The Via
Egnatia under Ottoman Rule, 1380–1699,
edited by E. Zachariadou, 3–7. Halcyon
days in Crete, 2. Rethymnon, 1996.
Avramea 1997. A. Avramea. Le Péloponnèse
du IVe au VIIIe siècle. Changements et
persistances. Byzantina Sorbonensia, 15.
Paris, 1997.
Avramea 2001. A. Avramea. “Byzantine
towns.” In Mystras 2001, 23–31.
Avramea 2002. A. Avramea. “Land and Sea
Communications, Fourth–Fifteenth
Centuries.” In Laiou 2002, vol. 1, 57–90.
Avramea and Kyrkou 1988. A. Avramea and
M. Kyrkou. “Inventaire topographique de
Corinthe et sa région à l’époque
chrétienne et byzantine.” In Géographie
historique du monde méditerranéen.
Fondation Européenne de la Science. Activité
Byzantine, 31–45. Byzantina Sorbonensia,
7. Paris, 1988.
Babic’ 1981. G. Babic’. “Mixailo Proelevsis,
solunski slikar panog XIV veka.” Zograf 12
(1981): 59–61.
Bacin and Ziino 1940. A. Bacin and V. Ziino.
“Nicopoli d’Epiro.” Palladio 4 (1940): 1–17.
Baker 2007. J. Baker. “Two ThirteenthCentury Hoards and some Site Finds from
Argos.” The Numismatic Chronicle 167
(2007): 211–33.
Bakirtzis 1975. Ch. Bakirtzis. “∏ ı·Ï¿ÛÛÈ·
Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ (·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ
Î·È ÚÔ‚Ï‹Ì·Ù·).” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 7 (1975):
289–343.
Bakirtzis 1977. Ch. Bakirtzis. “¶ÂÚ› ÙÔ˘
Û˘ÁÎÚÔÙ‹Ì·ÙÔ˜ Ù˘ ·ÁÔÚ¿˜ Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” In ∞Ú¯·›· ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· II.
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛÂȘ ηٿ ÙÔ ¢Â‡ÙÂÚÔ, ¢ÈÂıÓ¤˜
™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË, 19–24 ∞˘ÁÔ‡ÛÙÔ˘
1973, 257–69. Thessalonike, 1977.
Bakirtzis 1983. Ch. Bakirtzis. “ΔÈ Û˘Ó¤‚Ë ÛÙȘ
·Ú¯¤˜ ÙÔ˘ 7Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ· ÛÙËÓ £¿ÛÔ.” ΔÚ›ÙÔ
™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó· 29 Î·È 30
∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘, 1 ª·˝Ô˘ 1983. ¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· ηÈ
ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ Î·È ·Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 57–58.
∞thens, 1983.
Bakirtzis 1987. Ch. Bakirtzis. “ΔÔ ÂÈÛÎÔ›Ô
ÙˆÓ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο μ’ ΔÔÈÎÔ‡
™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘: ∏ ∫·‚¿Ï· Î·È Ë ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ Ù˘.
∫·‚¿Ï· 26–29/9/1986, 149–57.
Thessalonike, 1987.
Bakirtzis 1989a. Ch. Bakirtzis. “∏ Ë̤ڷ ÌÂÙ¿
ÙËÓ Î·Ù·ÛÙÚÔÊ‹ ÛÙÔ˘˜ ºÈÏ›Ô˘˜.” In
Angelidi 1989, 695–710.
Bakirtzis 1989b. Ch. Bakirtzis. “ΔÈ Û˘Ó¤‚Ë
ÛÙË £¿ÛÔ ÛÙȘ ·Ú¯¤˜ ÙÔ˘ 7Ô˘ Ì.Ã. ·ÈÒÓ·.”
In º›ÏÈ· ŒË ÂȘ °ÂÒÚÁÈÔÓ E. ª˘ÏˆÓ¿Ó, vol.
3, 339–41. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù.,
103. Athens, 1989.
Bakirtzis 1998. Ch. Bakirtzis. “Paul and
Philippi. The archaeological evidence.” In
Philippi at the time of Paul and after His
Death, edited by Ch. Bakirtzis and H.
Koester, 37–48. Harrisburg, Pa., 1998.
Bakirtzis 2002. Ch. Bakirtzis. “Pilgrimage to
Thessalonike: the Tomb of St. Demetrios.”
DOP 56 (2002): 175–92.
Bakirtzis 2003. Ch. Bakirtzis. “The Urban
Continuity and Size of Late Byzantine
Thessalonike.” DOP 57 (2003): 35–64.
Bakirtzis 2007. Ch. Bakirtzis. “Imports,
exports and autarky in Byzantine
Thessalonike from the seventh to the tenth
century.” In Post-Roman Towns, Trade and
Settlement in Europe and Byzantium, edited
by J. Henning, vol. 2, 89–118. MillenniumStudien, 5. Berlin, 2007.
Bakirtzis 2010. Ch. Bakirtzis. “Late Antiquity
and Christianity in Thessalonikē: Aspects of
a Transformation.” In Nasrallah et al.
2010, 397–426.
Bakirtzis 2012. N. Bakirtzis. “Δ· Ù›¯Ë ÙˆÓ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ fiψÓ: ∞ÈÛıËÙÈ΋, ȉÂÔÏÔÁ›Â˜
Î·È Û˘Ì‚ÔÏÈÛÌÔ›.” In Kiousopoulou 2012,
139–58.
Bakirtzis 2013. Ch. Bakirtzis, “The Early
Christian Church, 4th–7th Centuries.” In
Washington, D.C. and Los Angeles 2013,
94-97.
Bakirtzis and Koukouli-Chrysanthaki 1995.
Ch. Bakirtzis and Ch. KoukouliChrysanthaki. º›ÏÈÔÈ. ∞thens, 1995.
Bakirtzis and Mastora 2011. Ch. Bakirtzis
and P. Mastora. “Are the Mosaics in the
Rotunda in Thessaloniki linked to its
Conversion into a Christian Church?” In
The Days of St. Emperor Constantine und
̌ and Byzantium, 9th Symposium.
Helena, Nis
Nis, 3–5 June 2010, edited by M. Rakocija,
33–45. Niš , 2011.
Bakirtzis et al. 1980. Ch. Bakirtzis, E.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou, and A. Dunn.
“12Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.”
∞Delt 35 (1980): Chronika μ2, 437–59.
Bakirtzis et al. 1988. Ch. Bakirtzis, D.
| 277 |
Triantafyllos, Ch. Zarkada, E. Zeghinis, D.
Kotoulas, L. Liavas, G. Loutatidis, R.
Loutzaki, and I. Papantoniou. £Ú¿ÎË.
Athens, 1988.
Bakirtzis, Marki, and Paisidou 2012. Ch.
Bakirtzis, E. Marki, and M. Paisidou. “9Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” In
Andreadaki-Vlazaki 2012, 231–34.
Bakourou 2009. Ai. Bakourou.
“ΔÔÔÁÚ·ÊÈΤ˜ ·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÁÈ· ÙË
ÌÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ §·Î‰·ÈÌÔÓ›·.” In Sparta
and Laconia: from prehistory to pre-modern.
Proceedings of the Conference held in Sparta
(17–20 March 2005), edited by W. G.
Cavanagh, C. Gallou, and M. Georgiadis,
301–11. British School at Athens. Studies,
16. London, 2009.
Bakourou et al. 1998. Ai. Bakourou, G.
Marinou, E. Pantou, D. Charalambous, K.
Diamanti, V. Albani, D. Kai, N. Bouza, G.
Tsekes, ∂. Katsara, and G. Hadji-Minaglou.
“5Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.”
ADelt 53 (1998): Chronika μ1, 187–224.
Bakourou et al. 2000. Ai. Bakourou, S.
Sinos, V. Albani, I. Angelopoulou, E.
Pantou, K. Diamanti, G. Tsekes, D.
Charalampous, and E. Katsara, “5Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt
55 (2000): Chronika B1, 241–68.
Bakourou, Katsara, and Kalamara 2003.
Ai. Bakourou, E. Katsara, and P. Kalamara.
“Argos and Sparta: Pottery of the 12th
and 13th centuries.” In VIIe Congrès
International sur la Céramique Médiévale en
Méditerranée. Thessaloniki, 11–16 octobre
1999, edited by Ch. Bakirtzis, 233–36.
Athens, 2003.
Banaka-Dimaki et al. 1998. A. BanakaDimaki, A. Panayotopoulou, and A.
Oikonomou-Laniado. “ΔÔ ÕÚÁÔ˜ ηٿ ÙË
ڈ̷˚΋ Î·È ÙËÓ ·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô: ™‡ÓıÂÛË ÙˆÓ ·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎÒÓ
‰Â‰Ô̤ӈÓ.” In Pariente and Touchais
1998, 327–36.
BAR. Int. Ser. British Archaeological Reports.
International Series.
Barker 2003. J. Barker. “Late Byzantine
Thessalonike: A second City’s Challenges
and Responses.” DOP 57 (2003): 5–33.
BCH. Bulletin de Correspondance Hellénique.
Bees 1927. N. A, Bees. “∂ÎÎÏËÛ›· ∞ıËÓÒÓ.”
πn §ÂÍÈÎfiÓ EÏ¢ıÂÚÔ˘‰¿ÎË, vol. I, 362–70.
Athens, 1927.
Belle 1881. H. Belle. Trois années en Grèce.
Paris, 1881.
Belting, Mango, and Mouriki 1978. H.
Belting, C. Mango, and D. Mouriki. The
Mosaics and Frescoes of St. Mary
Pammakaristos (Fethiye Camii) at Istanbul.
Dumbarton Oaks Studies, 15. Washington,
D.C., 1978.
Biers 2003. J. Biers. “‘Lavari Est Vivere’, Baths
in Roman Corinth.” In Centenary 2003,
303–19.
Blackman 2000. D. J. Blackman. “√È ÏÈ̤Ó˜
Ù˘ ·Ú¯·›·˜ ƒfi‰Ô˘.” In Rhodes, 2400 years,
vol. 1, 41–50.
Blegen et al. 1930. C. W. Blegen, O.
Broneer, R. Stillwell, and A. R. Bellinger.
Acrocorinth: Excavations in 1926. Corinth
III/1. Cambridge, Mass., 1930.
Bodnar 1960. E. W. Bodnar. Cyriacus of
Ancona and Athens. Collection Latomus,
43. Brussels, 1960.
Bodnar 1970. E. W. Bodnar. “Athens in April
1436.” Archaeology 23/III (1970): 188–99.
Boersock, Brown, and Grabar 1999. G. W.
Boersock, P. Brown, and O. Grabar. Late
Antiquity. A Guide to the Postclassical World.
Cambridge, Mass., and London 1999.
Bogevska 2012. S. Bogevska. “The Holy
Trinity in the diocese of the archbishopric
of Ohrid in the second half of the 13th
century.” Patrimonium 10 (2012): 143–75.
| 278 |
Bommelaer and Grandjean 1971. J.-F.
Bommelaer and Y. Grandjean. “Place de
Kypséli.” BCH 95 (1971): 736–45.
Bon 1936. A. Bon. “Medieval fortifications of
Acrocorinth and its vicinity.” In Carpenter
and Bon 1936, 128–281.
Bon 1951. A. Bon. Le Péloponnèse byzantin
jusqu’en 1204. Bibliothèque byzantine.
Études, 1. Paris 1951.
Bon 1969. A. Bon. La Morée Franque.
Recherches historiques, topographiques et
archéologiques sur la Principauté
d’Achaïe (1205–1430). 2 vols (Text and
Album). Bibliothèque des Écoles françaises
d’Athènes et de Rome, 213. Paris, 1969.
Bonanno-Aravantinou 1988. M. BonannoAravantinou. “√È Û·ÚÎÔÊ¿ÁÔÈ ÚˆÌ·˚΋˜
ÂÔ¯‹˜ Ù˘ μÔȈٛ·˜. ™˘ÓÔÙÈ΋ ıÂÒÚËÛË.”
In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∞’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ
ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ. £‹‚·, 10–14 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1986,
edited by A. P. Bekiaris = ∂∂μª 1/1 (1988):
307–24.
Boojamra 1982. J. L. Boojamra. Church
Reform in the Late Byzantine Empire. A Study
for the Patriarchate of Athanasios of
Constantinople. ∞Ó¿ÏÂÎÙ· μÏ·Ù¿‰ˆÓ, 35.
Thessalonike, 1982.
Bosworth 2002. C. E. Bosworth. “Arab
attacks on Rhodes in the pre-Ottoman
period.” In Aspects of Arab Seafaring. An
attempt to fill in the gaps of maritime history,
edited by Yacoub Yousef al-Hijji and V.
Christides, 63–72. Athens, 2002.
Bouras 1969. Ch. Bouras.
“μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ AÓ·ÁÂÓÓ‹ÛÂȘ Î·È Ë
·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÙÔ˘ 11Ô˘ Î·È ÙÔ˘ 12Ô˘
·ÈÒÓÔ˜.” DChAE 5 (1969): 247–72.
Bouras 1980. L. Bouras. √ ÁÏ˘Ùfi˜ ‰È¿ÎÔÛÌÔ˜
ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡ Ù˘ ¶·Ó·Á›·˜ ÛÙÔ ÌÔÓ·ÛÙ‹ÚÈ ÙÔ˘
√Û›Ô˘ §Ô˘Î¿. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù.,
95. Athens, 1980.
Bouras 1981. Ch. Bouras. “City and Village:
Urban Design and Architecture.” In XVI.
Internationaler Byzantinistenkongress. Wien,
4.–9. Oktober 1981. Akten I/2 = JÖB 31/2
(1981): 611–53.
Bouras 1982a. Ch. Bouras. “ŒÓ· ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi
ÏÔ˘ÙÚfi ÛÙËÓ §·Î‰·ÈÌÔÓ›·.” ∞∂ (1982):
99–112.
Bouras 1982b. Ch. Bouras. Nea Moni on
Chios. History and architecture. Athens,
1982.
Bouras 1982–83. Ch. Bouras. “Houses in
Byzantium.” DChAE 11 (1982–83): 1–26.
Bouras 1987. Ch. Bouras. “L’église de la
Théotokos de la citadelle d’Argos.” BCH
111 (1987): 455–69.
Bouras 1997. Ch. Bouras. “Mistra. Greece.”
In Thessalonike 1997, 76–79.
Bouras 1998–99. Ch. Bouras. “¶ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈο
ÙˆÓ ÌÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ Î·È ÙˆÓ
˘ÛÙÂÚÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ fiψÓ.” DChAE 20
(1998–99): 89–98.
Bouras 2001. Ch. Bouras. “The Impact of
Frankish Architecture on ThirteenthCentury Byzantine Architecture.” in The
Crusades from the Perspective of Byzantium
and the Muslim World, edited by A. Laiou
and P. Mottahedeh, 247–62. Washington,
D.C., 2001.
Bouras 2002. Ch. Bouras. “Aspects of the
Byzantine City, Eighth–Fifteenth
Centuries.” In Laiou 2002, vol 2, 497–528.
Bouras 2004. Ch. Bouras. “The Soteira
Lycodemou at Athens. Architecture.”
DChAE 25 (2004): 11–24.
Bouras 2006. Ch. Bouras. Byzantine and PostByzantine Architecture in Greece. Athens,
2006.
Bouras 2010. Ch. Bouras, μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ∞ı‹Ó·,
10Ô˜–12Ô˜ ·È. ªÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô ªÂÓ¿ÎË.
¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 6. Athens, 2010.
Bouras 2012a. Ch. Bouras. “Alaric in
Athens.” DChAE 32 (2012): 1–6.
Bouras 2012b. Ch. Bouras. “ªÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜
Î·È ˘ÛÙÂÚÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ fiÏÂȘ ·fi ÙËÓ
ÛÎÔÈ¿ Ù˘ ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌ›·˜ Î·È Ù˘
·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋˜.” In Kiousopoulou 2012,
1–14.
Bouras and Bouras 2002. Ch. Bouras and L.
Bouras. ∏ ÂÏÏËÓÈ΋ Ó·Ô‰ÔÌ›· ηٿ ÙÔÓ 12Ô
·ÈÒÓ·. Athens, 2002.
Bowden 2003. W. Bowden. Epirus Vetus: The
Archaeology of a Late Antique Province.
London, 2003.
Bowden 2007. W. Bowden. “Nicopolis. The
Ideology of the Late Antique City.” In
Zachos 2007, vol. 1, 135–49.
Bredenkamp 1983. F. Bredenkamp. The
Byzantine Empire of Thessalonike (1224–
1242). Ph.D. dissertation. Johannesburg,
1983.
Brocas-Deflassieux 1999. L. BrocasDeflassieux. ∞Ú¯·›· μ¤ÚÔÈ·. ªÂϤÙË
ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›·˜. Berroia, 1999.
Brogiolo and Ward-Perkins 1999. The Idea
and Ideal of the Town between Late Antiquity
and the Early Middle Ages, edited by G. P.
Brogiolo and B. Ward-Perkins. Leiden,
1999.
Broneer 1935. O. Broneer. “Excavations in
Corinth, 1934.” AJA 59 (1935): 53–75.
Brooks 1898. E. W. Brooks. “Δhe Arabs in
Asia Minor (641–750) from Arabic
Sources.” JHS 18 (1898): 182–208.
Brouskari 2004. M. Brouskari. “√È
·Ó·Ûηʤ˜ ÓÔÙ›ˆ˜ Ù˘ ∞ÎÚÔfiψ˜. Δ·
ÁÏ˘Ù¿.” AE (2004): 1–204.
Brown 2008. A. Brown. The City of Corinth
and Urbanism in Late Antique Greece. Ph.D.
dissertation. Berkeley, 2008.
Brown 2012. A. Brown. “Last Men Standing,
Chlamydatus Portraits and Public Life in
Late Antique Corinth.” Hesperia 81 (2012):
141–76.
Brubaker 1986. L. Brubaker. “Kastoria.”
Dictionary of the Middle Ages, vol. 7, 224.
New York, 1986.
Bryer 1986. A. Bryer. “The Structure of the
Late Byzantine Town: Dioikismos and
Mesoi.” In Continuity and Change in Late
Byzantine and Early Ottoman Society, edited
by A. Bryer and H. Lowry, 263–79,
Washington, D.C., 1986.
Bryer and Herrin 1977. Iconoclasm. Papers
given at the Ninth Spring Symposium of
Byzantine Studies. University of Birmingham,
March 1975, edited by A. Bryer and J.
Herrin. Birmingham, 1977.
BSA. The Annual of the British School at Athens.
BSl. Byzantinoslavica.
Buchon 1843. J. A. Bouchon. La Grèce
continentale et la Morée. Voyage, séjour et
études historiques en 1840 et 1841. Paris,
1843.
Buchwald 2007. ∏. Buchwald. “Byzantine
Town planning – Does it exist?” In Material
Culture and Well-being in Byzantium (400–
1453). Proceedings of the International
Conference. Cambridge, 8–10 September 2001,
edited by M. Grünbart, E. Kislinger, A.
Muthesius, and D. Ch. Stathakopoulos,
57–74. Österr. Ak. der Wiss. Philos.-hist.
Klasse. Denkschr., 356. Veröff. zur
Byzanzforschung, 11. Vienna, 2007.
Burckhalter and Philippa-Touchais 2003.
F. Burckhalter and A. Philippa-Touchais.
“Chroniques des fouilles et découvertes
archéologiques en Grèce en 2001 et 2002.
Argos.” BCH 127 (2003): 762–63.
ByzF. Byzantinische Forschungen
BZ. Byzantinische Zeitschrift
Calomino 2006. D. Calomino. Nicopolis
d’Epiro. Nuovi studi sulla zecca e sulla
produzione monetale. BAR. Int. Ser., 2214.
Oxford, 2011.
Cameron 1969. A. Cameron. “The last days
of the Academy at Athens.” Proceedings of
the Cambridge Philosophical Society 15
(1969): 7–29.
Cameron 1985. A. Cameron. Procopius and
the sixth century. The transformation of the
classical heritage, 10. Berkeley and Los
Angeles, 1985.
Camp 1986. J. Camp. The Athenian Agora.
Excavations in the heart of Classical Athens.
London, 1986.
CArch. Cahiers Archéologiques.
Carpenter and Bon 1936. R. Carpenter and
A. Bon. The defenses of Acrocorinth and the
Lower Town. Corinth, III/2. Cambridge,
Mass., 1936.
Castrén 1994. Post Herulian Athens, edited by
P. Castrén. Papers and monographs of the
Finnish Institute at Athens, 1. Helsinki,
1994.
Castrén 1994a. P. Castrén. “General aspects
of life in Post-Herulian Athens.” In Castrén
1994, 1–14.
Centenary 2003. The Centenary, edited by C.
K. Williams and N. Bookidis. Corinth, XX.
Princeton, N.J., 2003.
CFHB. Corpus Fontium Historiae Byzantinae.
Chaireti 1988. M. Chaireti. “μÂÓÂÙÔ› ¤ÌÔÚÔÈ
ÛÙË £‹‚· ·fi ÙÔÓ π∞’ ·ÈÒÓ·.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
∞’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ.
£‹‚·, 10–14 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1986, edited by
A. P. Bekiaris = ∂∂μª I/1 (1988): 577–89.
Chalkia 1997. E. Chalkia. “Early Christian
Art.” In Sakellariou 1997, 166–81.
Chalkia 2004. E. Chalkia. “Un sarcofago
costantinopolitano a Nicopoli.” RivArchCr
80 (2004), 211–31.
Chalkia 2006a. E. Chalkia. “La scultura
paleocristiana di Nicopoli. Alcune
considerazioni.” In Akten des XIV.
Internazionalen Kongresses für Christliche
Archäologie, Wien 1999, edited by R.
Harreither, Ph. Pergola, R. Pillinger, and
A. Pulz, 281–87. Vatican City and Vienna,
2006.
Chalkia 2006b. E. Chalkia. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfiÓ
ªÔ˘Û›ÔÓ – ¡·fi˜ Ù˘ Δ¤¯Ó˘ Î·È Ù˘
πÛÙÔÚ›·˜ Ù˘ ªÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜.” In
Athens 2006, 53–63.
Chalkia 2007. E. Chalkia. “™˘ÌÏËڈ̷ÙÈ΋
·Ó·Ûηʋ ÛÙË ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ¢ Ù˘ ¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘.”
In Zachos 2007, vol. 1, 659–66.
Chalkia 2012. E. Chalkia. “√È Â›ÛÎÔÔÈ
¡ÈÎÔfiψ˜ ¢Ô˘Ì¤ÙÈÔÈ ˆ˜ ¯ÔÚËÁÔ›.” In
™Â›Ú·. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋˜ ™˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛ˘
ÚÔ˜ ÙÈÌ‹Ó Ù˘ ∞ÁÁ¤ÏÈη˜ ¡ÙÔ‡˙oÁÏË Î·È ÙÔ˘
∫ˆÓÛÙ·ÓÙ›ÓÔ˘ ∑¿¯Ô˘. πˆ¿ÓÓÈÓ·, 1–3
¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2012 (forthcoming).
Chalkia 2013. E. Chalkia. ∏ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ¢ Ù˘
¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘. √ ÎÔÈÌËÙËÚÈ·Îfi˜ Ó·fi˜ Ù˘ fiÏ˘
(forthcoming).
Charanis 1946. P. Charanis. “Nicephorus I,
the Savior of Greece from the Slavs (810
A.D.).” Byzantina-Metabyzantina 1 (1946):
75–92 (reprinted in Studies on the
demography of the Byzantine Empire:
Collected Studies. London: Variorum
Reprints, 1972).
Charanis 1953. P. Charanis. “The term
Helladikoi in Byzantine texts of the sixth,
seventh and eighth centuries.” In EEBS 23
(1953): 615–20 (reprinted in Studies on the
demography of the Byzantine Empire:
Collected Studies. London: Variorum
Reprints, 1972 ).
Charanis 1955. P. Charanis. “Hellas in the
Greek sources of the sixth, seventh, and
eighth centuries.” In Late Classical and
Mediaeval Studies in Honor of Albert Mathias
Friend, Jr., edited by K. Weitzmann, 161–
76. Princeton, N.J., 1955 (reprinted in
Studies on the demography of the Byzantine
Empire: Collected Studies. London: Variorum
Reprints, 1972 ).
Charanis 1976. P. Charanis. “The Slavs,
Byzantium and the historical significance of
the First Bulgarian kingdom.” Balkan
Studies 17 (1976): 5–24.
Charitonidis 1968. S. Charitonidis.
“¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›· §¤Û‚Ô˘.”
ADelt 23 (1968): Meletai, 10–69.
Charitonidou-Vavylopoulou 1984.
A. Charitonidou-Vavylopoulou. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÎÂÚ·ÌÂÈ΋ ÛÙËÓ ÕÚÙ·.” DChAE 12 (1984):
453–72.
Chasiotis 1997. I. K. Chasiotis. “∏
ÙÔ˘ÚÎÔÎÚ·ÙÔ‡ÌÂÓË £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË: Ë ÚÒÙË
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô˜ (15Ô˜ ·È.–1830). In Τοῖς ἀγαθοῖς
βασιλεύουσα. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË, πÛÙÔÚ›· ηÈ
¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌfi˜, edited by I. K. Chasiotis, 102–16.
Thessalonike, 1997.
Chatzidaki 2000. N. Chatzidaki. “æËÊȉˆÙ¿
Î·È ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ ÛÙȘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ Î·È ÙȘ
ÌÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ ÂÎÎÏËۛ˜ Ù˘ ∞ı‹Ó·˜.” In
Aı‹Ó·È. Afi ÙËÓ ∫Ï·ÛÛÈ΋ ∂Ô¯‹ ¤ˆ˜ ™‹ÌÂÚ·
(5Ô˜ ·È. .Ã.–2000 Ì.Ã.), edited by Ch.
Bouras, M. B. Sakellariou, K. P. Staikos,
and E. Touloupa, 249–79. Athens, 2000.
Chatzidakis 1962. M. Chatzidakis. Icones de
Saint George des Grecs et de la Collection de
l’Institut. Bibliothèque de l’Institut
hellénique d’études byzantines et postbyzantines de Venise, no 1. Venice, 1962.
Chatzidakis 1972. M. Chatzidakis. “Aspects
de la peinture religieuse dans les Balkans
(1300–1500).” In Aspects of the Balkans:
Continuity and Change: Contributions to the
International Balkan Conference held at UCLA,
October 23–28, 1969, edited by H. Birnbaum
and S. Vryonis, Jr., 177–97. The Hague and
Paris, 1972.
Chatzidakis 1979. M. Chatzidakis. “¡ÂÒÙÂÚ·
ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ÈÛÙÔÚ›· Î·È ÙËÓ Ù¤¯ÓË Ù˘
ªËÙÚfiÔÏ˘ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” DChA∂ 9
(1979): 143–55.
Chatzidakis 1981. M. Chatzidakis. Mystras. The
Medieval City and the Castle. Athens. 1981.
Chatzidakis 1985. M. Chatzidakis. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
∞ı‹Ó·.” ™‡Ó·ÍË 16 (1985): 13–18.
Chaviarlis 2004. I. P. Chaviarlis. ∏ ¶·Ó·Á›· Ë
∫·Ù·ÎÂÎÚ˘Ì̤ÓË ÙÔ˘ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ [1994]. 2nd ed.
Argos, 2004.
Cheimonopoulou 2004. ª.
Cheimonopoulou. “°ÂˆÚÁÈ΋ Δ¯ÓÔÏÔÁ›·
ÛÙȘ §Ô˘ÏÔ˘‰È¤˜ ∫›ÙÚÔ˘˜.” In ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο
ÙÂÎÌ‹ÚÈ· ‚ÈÔÙ¯ÓÈÎÒÓ ÂÁηٷÛÙ¿ÛÂˆÓ Î·Ù¿ ÙË
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÔ¯‹, 5Ô˜–15o˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜.
ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋ ∂Ù·ÈÚ›·, ∂ȉÈÎfi ı¤Ì·
ÙÔ˘ 22Ô˘ ™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ηÈ
ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘
(∞ı‹Ó·, 17–19 ª·˝Ô˘ 2002), 47–59. Athens,
2004.
Chionidis 1970. G. Chionidis. πÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘
μÂÚÔ›·˜, vol. 2, μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ› ÃÚfiÓÔÈ.
Thessalonike, 1970.
Chionidis 2004. G. Chionidis. “πÛÙÔÚ›· ηÈ
ÎÔÈÓˆÓ›·.” In ∂Ú·ÙÂÈÓ‹ ∏Ì·ı›·, 92–107.
Berroia, 2004.
Chlepa 2002. E.-A. Chlepa. ∞Ó·‚¿ıÌÈÛË ÙˆÓ
·Ú¯·›ˆÓ ÌÓËÌ›ˆÓ Î·È Û˘ÓfiÏˆÓ Ù˘ fiÏ˘
ÙÔ˘ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜. ª¤ÙÚ· ÚÔÛÙ·Û›·˜, ·Ó¿‰ÂÈÍË Î·È
¤ÓÙ·ÍË ÛÙÔÓ ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈÎfi ÈÛÙfi. Argos, 2002.
Chondrogiannis 2010. S. Th. Chondrogiannis.
ªÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô ∞ÓÙÈ‚Ô˘ÓÈÒÙÈÛÛ·˜ – ∫¤Ú΢ڷ.
Thessalonike, 2010.
Choras 1975. G. A. Choras. ∏ «∞Á›· ªÔÓ‹»
∞Ú›·˜ ÂÓ ÙË ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋ Î·È ÔÏÈÙÈ΋
ÈÛÙÔÚ›· ¡·˘Ï›Ô˘ Î·È ÕÚÁÔ˘˜. Athens, 1975.
Choulia- Kapeloni 2008. S. ChouliaKapeloni 2008. “√ Ó·fi˜ San Salvatore ηÈ
Ë μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ™˘ÏÏÔÁ‹ ÷ӛˆÓ.” πn
Moyseidou 2008, 163–69.
Chourmouziadis et al. 1976. G. Ch.
Chourmouziadis, K. Gallis, and G.
Tziaphalias. “£ÂÛÛ·Ï›·.” ∞Delt 31 (1976):
Chronika B1, 173–85.
Chrestomathy 2010. Strabons Geographika,
Band 9: Epitome und Chrestomathie, edited
by S. Radt, 243–46. Göttingen, 2010.
Christides 1984. V. Christides. The conquest
of Crete by the Arabs (ca. 824): a turning point
in the struggle between Byzantium and Islam.
Athens, 1984.
Chronica Byzantina Breviora 1975. Chronica
Byzantina Breviora, edited by P. Schreiner.
CFHB, 12/1. Vienna, 1975.
Chronicle of Monemvasia 1963. P. Lemerle.
“La chronique improprement dite de
Monemvasie: le contexte historique et
légendaire.” REB 21 (1963): 5–49.
Chronicle of Monemvasia 1976. Cronaca di
Monemvasia, edited by I. Dujčev. Testi e
monumenti. Testi, 12. Palermo, 1976.
Chronicle of the Morea 1940. Τὸ Χρονικὸν
τοῦ Μορέως, ΔÔ ÂÏÏËÓÈÎfiÓ Î›ÌÂÓÔÓ.
∫·Ù¿ ÙÔÓ ∫Ò‰Èη Ù˘ ∫ÔÂÁ¯¿Á˘ ÌÂÙ¿
Û˘ÌÏËÚÒÛÂˆÓ Î·È ·Ú·ÏÏ·ÁÒÓ ÂÎ ÙÔ˘
¶·ÚÈÛÈÓÔ‡, edited by P. Kalonaros. Athens,
1940.
Chronicle of the Tocco 1975. Cronaca dei
Tocco di Cefalonia, edited by G. Schirò.
CFHB, 10. Rome, 1975.
Chronicon paschale 1832. Chronicon paschale,
edited by L. Dindorf. CSHB. Bonn, 1832.
Chrysos 1981. E. Chrysos. “™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙËÓ
ÈÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘ ∏›ÚÔ˘ ηٿ ÙËÓ
ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” ∏ÂÈÚˆÙÈο
ÃÚÔÓÈο 23 (1981): 9–111.
Chrysos 1987. Nikopolis I. Proceedings of the
first International Symposium on Nikopolis.
Preveza, 23–29 September 1984, edited by E.
Chrysos. Preveza, 1987.
Chrysos 1992. The Despotate of Epirus.
Proceedings of the International Symposium
“The Despotate of Epirus.” Arta, 27–31 May
1990, edited by E. Chrysos. Arta, 1992
Chrysos 1997. E. Chrysos. “Early Byzantine
Period (fourth–sixth centuries).” In
Sakellariou 1997, 148–65.
Chrysostomou and Kefallonitou 2001. P.
Chrysostomou and F. Kefallonitou.
Nikopolis. Athens, 2001.
Chryssochoidis 2013. K. Chryssochoidis.
“Mount Athos. The Monastic
Commonwealth of the Middle Ages.” In
Washington, D.C., and Los Angeles 2013,
115–17.
City of Rhodes 2007. 15 ¯ÚfiÓÈ· ¤ÚÁˆÓ
·ÔηٿÛÙ·Û˘ ÛÙË ªÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ ¶fiÏË Ù˘
ƒfi‰Ô˘. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈÎÔ‡
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ. 2 vols. Athens, 2007.
Clarke 1816. E. D. Clarke. Travels in various
countries of Europe, Asia and Africa, IV, part
the second, Greece, Egypt and the Holy Land,
section the third. London, 1816.
Collart 1928. P. Collart. “Le theâtre de
Philippes.” BCH 52 (1928): 74–124.
Collart and Ducrey 1975. P. Collart and P.
Ducrey. Philippes I. Les reliefs rupestres. BCH.
Suppl., II. Athens and Paris, 1975.
Concina 2003. E. Concina. La città bizantina.
Storia della città, 5. Rome and Bari, 2003.
Constantakopoulou 1984. ∞.
Constantakopoulou. πÛÙÔÚÈ΋ ÁˆÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘
ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·˜ (4Ô˜–6Ô˜ ·È.). Ioannina, 1984.
Constantine Armenopoulos 1971.
Κωνσταντίνου Ἀρμενοπούλου, Πρόχειρον
Νόμων ἢ Ἑξάβιβλος, edited by K. Pitsakis.
Athens, 1971.
Constantine Porphyrogennetos, De
Administrando Imperio 1967. Constantine
Porphyrogennetos. De Administrando
Imperio, edited by G. Moravcsik and
translated by R. J. H. Jenkins. CFHB, 1.
Washington, D.C., 1967.
Constantine Porphyrogennetos, De
thematibus 1840. Constantinus
Porphyrogenitus, De thematibus et De
administrando imperio, edited by I. Bekker.
CSHB. Bonn, 1840.
Constantine Porphyrogennetos, On the
Themes 1952. Costantino Porfirogenito: De
thematibus, edited by A. Pertusi. Vatican
City, 1952.
Constantine Porphyrogennetos, Three
Treatises 1990. Constantine
Porphyrogenitus. Three Treatises on Imperial
Military Expeditions, edited by J. Haldon.
CFHB, 28. Vienna, 1990.
Constantine the Rhodian 1850. Constantine
the Rhodian. In Anecdota Graeca, edited by
P. Matranga, vol. 2. Rome, 1850.
Constantinides 1992. E. C. Constantinides.
The Wall Paintings of the Panagia
Olympiotissa at Elasson in Northern Thessaly.
2 vols. Athens, 1992.
Cormack 1989. R. Cormack. The Byzantine
Eye: Studies in Art and Patronage. Variorum
Reprints. London, 1989.
CorsRav. Corso di Cultura sull’ arte ravennate e
bizantina.
Couchaud 1842. A. Couchaud. Choix d’églises
Byzantines en Grèce. Paris, 1842.
Coulson 2002. M. L. Coulson. The Church of
Merbaka. Cultural Diversity and Integration in
the 13th Century Peloponnese. Ph.D.
dissertation. London, 2002.
Coulson 2013. M. L. Coulson. “Birds in
Paradise: Funerary Iconography at Merbaka
Church.” DChAE 34 (2013): 157–66.
Coumbaraki-Pansélinou 1976. N.
Coumbaraki-Pansélinou. Saint Pierre de
Kalyvia Kouvara et la chapelle de la Vierge de
Mérenta. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ªÓËÌ›·, 3.
Thessalonike, 1976.
Coupry and Feyel 1936. J. Coupry and M.
Feyel. “Inscriptions de Philippes.” BCH 60
(1936): 37–58.
Cramer 1963. J. A. Cramer. Anecdota graeca
e codd. manuscriptis Bibliothecarum
Oxoniensium. Amsterdam, 1963.
Crow 1999. J. G. Crow. “Fortification.”
In Boersock, Brown, and Grabar 1999,
456–77.
CSHB. Corpus Scriptorum Historiae
Byzantinae.
Cuomo di Caprio 1979. N. Cuomo di Caprio.
“Pottery and Tile-Kilns in South Italy and
Sicily.” In Roman Brick and Tile. Studies in
Manufacture, Distribution and Use in the
Western Empire, edited by A. McWhirr,
73–95. BAR. Int. Ser., 68. Oxford, 1979.
C’uřcic’ 2000. S. C’určic’. Some Observations and
Questions Regarding Early Christian Architecture
in Thessaloniki. Thessalonike, 2000.
C’uřcic’ 2003. S. C’určic’. “The Role of Late
Byzantine Thessalonike in Church
Architecture in the Balkans.” DOP 57
(2003): 65–84.
C’uřcic’ 2010a. S. C’určic’. “Christianization of
Thessalonikē: The making of Christian
‘Urban Iconography.’” In Nasrallah et al.
2010, 213–44.
C’uřcic’ 2010b. S. C’určic’. Architecture in the
Balkans. From Diocletian to Süleyman the
Magnificent. New Haven and London,
2010.
C’uřcic’ 2013. S. C’určic’. “The Church as a
Symbol of the Cosmos in Byzantine
Architecture and Art.” In Washington,
D.C., and Los Angeles 2013, 103–8.
Curta 2010. F. Curta. “Still waiting for the
barbarians? The making of the Slavs in
‘Dark-Age’ Greece.” In Neglected
Barbarians, edited by F. Curta, 403–78.
Studies in the early Middle Ages, 32.
Turnhout, 2010.
Curta 2011. F. Curta. The Edinburgh History of
the Greeks, c. 500 to 1050: The Early Middle
Ages. Edinburgh, 2011.
Cutler 2013. A. Cutler. Refiguring the Face of
God: The Daphni Pantokrator. Studies in the
Visual Cultures of the Middle Ages, 3.
Turnhout (forthcoming)
Cvetkovic’ 1994. B. Cvetkovic’. “The
investiture relief in Arta, Epiros.” Zbornik
̌ kog Instituta 33 (1994):
Radova Vizantinolos
103–12.
Da Costa-Louillet 1961. G. da Costa-Louillet.
“Saints de Grèce aux VIIIe, IXe et Xe
siècles.” Byzantion 31 (1961): 309–69.
Dagron 1977. G. Dagron. “Le christianisme
dans la ville Byzantine.” DOP 31 (1977): 3–25.
Dagron 2002. G. Dagron. “The Urban
Economy. Seventh– Twelfth Centuries.” In
Laiou 2002, vol. 2, 393–461.
Darko 1933. E. Darko. “∏ ÈÛÙÔÚÈ΋ ÛËÌ·Û›·
Î·È Ù· ÛÔ˘‰·ÈfiÙÂÚ· ÂÚ›ȷ ÙÔ˘
ªÔ˘¯Ï›Ô˘.” ∂∂μS 10 (1933): 454–82.
Darrouzès 1960. J. Darrouzès. Epistoliers
byzantins du Xe siècle. Archives de l’Orient
chrétien, 6. Paris, 1960.
Darrouzès 1966. J. Darrouzès. Documents
inédits d’ecclésiologie Byzantine. Archives de
l’Orient chrétien, 10. Paris, 1966.
Davidson 1952. G. R. Davidson. The Minor
Objects. Corinth XII. Princeton, N.J., 1952.
DChAE. ¢ÂÏÙ›ÔÓ Ù˘ ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋˜
∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜.
Decourt 1990. J.-C. Decourt. La Vallée de
l’Enipeus en Thessalie: études de topographie
et de géographie antique. BCH. Suppl., 21.
Athens and Paris, 1990.
De Gregorio 1994. G. de Gregorio. “Attività
scrittoria a Mistrà nell’ultima età Paleologa:
il caso del Cod. Mut. gr. 144.” Scrittura e
Civiltà 18 (1994): 243–80.
De Stefani 2012. C. De Stefani. “A Few
Thoughts on the Influence of Classical and
Byzantine Poetry on the Profane Poems of
Ioannes Mauropous.” In Poetry and Its
Contexts in Eleventh-century Byzantium, edited
by B. Floris and D. Kristoffel, 155–80.
Farnham and Burlington, 2012.
Deilaki and Kritzas 1973–74. E. Deilaki and
Ch. V. Kritzas. “∞ÚÁÔÏȉÔÎÔÚÈÓı›·,
∂ÊÔÚ›· ∫Ï·ÛÛÈÎÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ
¡·˘Ï›Ô˘, 1973–74.” ADelt 29 (1973–74):
Chronika B2, 199–249.
Delacoulonche 1859. A. Delacoulonche.
“Mémoire sur le berceau de la puissance
macédonienne des bords de l’Haliacmon et
ceux de l’Axius.” Archives des Missions
Scientifiques et Littéraires 8 (1859): 67–288.
Dellas 2000. G. Dellas. “√È ÛÙ·˘ÚÔıÔÏȷΤ˜
ÂÎÎÏËۛ˜ Ù˘ ªÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜ ƒfi‰Ô˘.” In
Rhodes, 2400 years, vol. II, 351–66.
Dellas 2007. G. Dellas. “∏ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÙˆÓ
ÌÂÁ¿ÏˆÓ ÈÔÙÈÎÒÓ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈÒÓ Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘:
¶·Ó·ÁÈ¿ ÙÔ˘ ªÔ‡ÚÁÎÔ˘, ¶·Ó·ÁÈ¿ ÙÔ˘
∫¿ÛÙÚÔ˘, ÕÁÈÔ˜ πˆ¿ÓÓ˘.” In City of Rhodes
2007, vol. I, 370–93. Athens, 2007.
Delvenakiotis 1970. V. Delvenakiotis. √
ªËÙÚÔÔÏ›Ù˘ πˆ¿ÓÓ˘ Ô ∫·ÏÔÎÙ¤Ó˘ Î·È ·È
£‹‚·È. Athens, 1970.
Delvoye 1964. Ch. Delvoye. “Considérations
sur l’emploi des tribunes dans l’église de la
Vierge Hodigitria de Mistra.” In Actes du
XIIe Congrès international d’études byzantines,
Ochrid 1961, vol. III, 41–47. Belgrade, 1964.
Demakopoulou and Touloupa 1978. K.
Demakopoulou and E. Touloupa. “μÔȈٛ·.”
∞Delt 33 (1978): Chronika B1, 108–19.
Deriziotis 1974. L. Deriziotis.
“¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfiÓ ÎÙ›ÛÌ· ÂÓ ÙË fiÏÂÈ Ù˘
μÂÚÔ›·˜.” ∞∞∞ 7/II (1974): 174–82.
Deriziotis and Dina 1979. L. Deriziotis and
A. Dina. “7Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ §¿ÚÈÛ·˜.” ADelt 34 (1979):
Chronika B1, 230–38.
Deriziotis and Dina 2012. L. Deriziotis and
A. Dina. “7Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” In Andreadaki-Vlazaki
2012, 169–72.
Deriziotis et al. 1985. L. Deriziotis, E.
Ioannidaki, S. Sdrolia, S. Choulia, A. Dina,
and Ai. Smpyraki-Kalantzi. “7Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 40 (1985):
Chronika, 208–23.
Deriziotis et al. 1997. L. Deriziotis, V.
Sythiakaki, P. Founta, Ch. Tsilimingas, K.
Mantzana, S. Sdrolia, A. Dina, K. Florou,
| 279 |
and E. Ioannidaki. “7Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 52 (1997): Chronika
B2, 527–52.
Deslondes 1997. O. Deslondes. Les fourreurs
de Kastoria entre la Macédoine et l’Occident.
Performances et fragilité d’un district artisanal
grec. Paris, 1997.
Detorakis 1970. Th. Detorakis. √È ¿ÁÈÔÈ Ù˘
ÚÒÙ˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘ Ù˘ ∫Ú‹Ù˘ Î·È Ë
Û¯ÂÙÈ΋ ÚÔ˜ ·˘ÙÔ‡˜ ÊÈÏÔÏÔÁ›·. μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË
™ÔÊ›·˜ ¡. ™·ÚÈfiÏÔ˘, 11. Athens, 1970.
Didioumi 2011. S. Didioumi. “Local
production and imported pottery from Kos
island, Greece (4th–8th c. A.D.).” In 4th
Conference on Late Roman Coarse Wares,
Cooking Wares and Amphorae in the
Mediterranean Archaeology and
Archaeometry, The Mediterranean: A Market
without Frontiers. Thessalonike, 7–10 April
2011. LRCW, 4 (in press).
Dimakopoulos 2001. I. Dimakopoulos, “ΔÔ
·Ï¿ÙÈ ÙˆÓ ¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁˆÓ (ÎÙ‹ÚÈÔ ∂) ÛÙÔÓ
ª˘ÛÙÚ¿, Ô ÎÙ›ÙˆÚ ÙÔ˘, ª·ÓÔ˘‹Ï μ’
¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁÔ˜, Î·È ÙÔ μÂÓÂÙÈÎfi ÙÔ˘
ÚfiÙ˘Ô.” In ∂ÈÎÔÛÙfi ¶ÚÒÙÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜
Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 4, 5 Î·È 6 ª·˝Ô˘ 2001.
¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ ÂÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È
·Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛÂˆÓ Î·ıÒ˜ Î·È Â˘ÚÂÙ‹ÚÈÔ ÂÙÒÓ
1991–2000, 33–34. ∞thens, 2001.
Dimitriadis 1973. V. Dimitriadis. ∏ ∫ÂÓÙÚÈ΋
Î·È ¢˘ÙÈ΋ ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· ηٿ ÙÔÓ ∂‚ÏÈÁÈ¿
ΔÛÂÏÂÌ‹. ª·Î‰ÔÓÈ΋ μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË, 39.
Thessalonike, 1973.
Dimitriadis 1983. V. Dimitriadis. ΔÔÔÁÚ·Ê›·
Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ ηٿ ÙËÓ ÂÔ¯‹ Ù˘
ΔÔ˘ÚÎÔÎÚ·Ù›·˜, 1430–1912. Thessalonike,
1983.
Dimitropoulou 2010. V. Dimitropoulou.
“Giving Gifts to God: Aspects of
Patronage in Byzantine Art.” In A
Companion to Byzantium, edited by L.
James, 161–70. Oxford, 2010.
Dimopoulou 1997. N. Dimopoulou.
“Workshops and craftsmen in the harbour
town of Knossos at Poros-Katsambas.”
In Δ¤¯ÓË. Craftsmen, craftswomen and
craftsmanship in the Aegean Bronze Age.
Proceedings of the 6th International Aegean
Conference. Philadelphia, Temple University,
18–21 April 1996, edited by Ph. P.
Betancourt, vol. I, 433–38. Aegaeum, 16.
Liege, 1997.
Dina 1990. A. Dina. “¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈο
ÌÓËÌ›· £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜.” ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›· 34
(March 1990): 87–94.
Dina 1992. A. Dina. “∂Èه̂Ș ÂÓ›Áڷʘ
ÛًϘ ·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋˜ ÂÔ¯‹˜ ·fi ÙȘ
ºıÈÒÙȉ˜ £‹‚˜ (¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘).” ¢ÈÂıÓ¤˜
™˘Ó¤‰ÚÈÔ ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ·Ú¯·›· £ÂÛÛ·Ï›· ÛÙË ÌÓ‹ÌË
ÙÔ˘ ¢ËÌ‹ÙÚË ƒ. £ÂÔ¯¿ÚË, μfiÏÔ˜ 29
√ÎÙˆ‚Ú›Ô˘-1 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1987, 448–56.
¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯. ¢ÂÏÙ., 48. ∞thens, 1992.
Dina 1994. A. Dina. “¡ÂÒÙÂÚ˜ ¤Ú¢Ó˜ ÛÙËÓ
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ fiÏË ÙˆÓ ºıȈٛ‰ˆÓ
£Ë‚ÒÓ.” In £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·. ¢Âη¤ÓÙ ¯ÚfiÓÈ·
·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋˜ ¤Ú¢ӷ˜, 1975–1990.
∞ÔÙÂϤÛÌ·Ù· Î·È ÚÔÔÙÈΤ˜. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ, §˘ÒÓ, 17–22 ∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘
1990, 357–70. Lyon, 1994.
Dina 2003. A. Dina. “∂˘Ú‹Ì·Ù· ·Ó·ÛηÊÒÓ
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋˜ Î·È μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ÂÔ¯‹˜
ÛÙËÓ ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ Ù˘ ∫¿ÚÏ·˜.” In ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi
¤ÚÁÔ £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜ Î·È ™ÙÂÚ¿˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·˜ 1/ I
(2003): 371–87.
Dina 2009. A. Dina. “¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈΤ˜
·Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ˜ ÛÙËÓ ·Ú·Ï›· ÙˆÓ ºıȈٛ‰ˆÓ
£Ë‚ÒÓ–¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” In ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi
¤ÚÁÔ £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜ Î·È ™ÙÂÚ¿˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·˜ 2.
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÂÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋˜ Û˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛ˘. μfiÏÔ˜,
16–19.3.2006, ÙfiÌÔ˜ π: £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·, ÙfiÌÔ˜ ππ:
™ÙÂÚ¿ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·, edited by A. MazarakisAinian, vol. π, 423–39. Volos, 2009.
Dina 2010. A. Dina. “∫ÂÚ·ÌÈ΋ ·fi ÙËÓ
| 280 |
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ fiÏË ÙˆÓ ºıȈٛ‰ˆÓ
£Ë‚ÒÓ.” In ∫ÂÚ·ÌÈ΋ Ù˘ ⁄ÛÙÂÚ˘
∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ·˜ ·fi ÙÔÓ ÂÏÏ·‰ÈÎfi ¯ÒÚÔ (3Ô˜–7Ô˜
·È. Ì.Ã.), edited by D. Papanikola-Bakirtzi
and D. ∫ousoulakou, 563–79. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘
∞Ú¯. πÓÛÙÈÙ. ª·Î‰ÔÓÈÎÒÓ Î·È £Ú·ÎÈÎÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ, 8. Thessalonike, 2010.
Dina et al. 2001–4. A. Dina, V. Sythiakaki,
L. Deriziotis, S. Sdrolia, A. Gialouri, and
K. Mantzana. “7Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 56–59 (2001–4):
Chronika μ2, 599–664.
Dio Cassius 1968. Dio’s Roman History VI.
With an English Translation by E. Cary, on
the basis of the version of H. B. Forster.
London and Cambridge, Mass., 1968.
Ditten 1983. H. Ditten. “Prominente Slawen
und Bulgaren im byzantinischen Diensten
(Ende des 7. bis Anfang des 10.
Jahrhunderts).” In Studien zum 8. und 9. Jh.
im Byzanz, edited by H. Köpstein and F.
Winkelmann, 95–119. Berlin, 1983.
Ditten 1993. H. Ditten. Ethnische
Verschiebungen zwischen der Balkanhalbinsel
und Kleinasien vom Ende des 6. bis zur
zweiten Hälfte des 9. Jahrhunderts. Berl.
Byzant. Arbeiten. Deutsche Ak. der Wiss.
zu Berlin, Institut für Griech.-Röm.
Altertumskunde, 59. Berlin, 1993.
Djuric’ 1972. V. Djuric’. “La peinture murale
de Resava, ses origines et sa place dans la
peinture byzantine.” In L’école de Morava
et son temps, Symposium de Resava, 1968,
277–91. Belgrade, 1972.
Djuric’ 1975. V. J. Djuric’. “Mali Grad – Sv.
Atanasije u Kosturu - Borje.” Zograf 6
(1975): 31–50.
Djuric’ 1993. V. J. Djuric’. “Nerezi.” Lexikon
des Mittelalters, vol. 6, 1095. Munich and
Zürich, 1993.
DOP. Dumbarton Oaks Papers.
Doucoux and Lemerle 1938. H. Doucoux
and P. Lemerle. “L’acropole et l’enceinte
haute de Philippe.” BCH 62 (1938): 4–19.
Drakopoulou 1996. E. Drakopoulou.
“∏ ÛÂÚ‚È΋ ·ÚÔ˘Û›· ÛÙËÓ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿
ÙȘ ·Ú·ÌÔÓ¤˜ Ù˘ ÙÔ˘ÚÎÈ΋˜ ηٿÎÙËÛ˘.”
In μ˘˙¿ÓÙÈÔ Î·È ™ÂÚ‚›· ηٿ ÙÔÓ π¢’ ·ÈÒÓ·, 89–
97. ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó.
¢ÈÂıÓ‹ ™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 3. Athens, 1996.
Drakopoulou 1997. E. Drakopoulou. ∏ fiÏË
Ù˘ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿˜ ÙË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ Î·È ÌÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÔ¯‹ (12Ô˜–16Ô˜ ·È.). πÛÙÔÚ›· – Δ¤¯ÓË –
∂ÈÁڷʤ˜. ΔÂÙÚ¿‰È· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘, 5. Athens, 1997.
Drakopoulou 2003. E. Drakopoulou. “Les
‘honorables archontes,’ donateurs à
Kastoria post-byzantine.” DChAE 24 (2003):
267–74.
Drakopoulou 2005. E. Drakopoulou.
“Inscriptions de la ville de Kastoria
(Macédoine) du 16e au 18e siècle: tradition
et adaptation.” REB 63 (2005): 5–40.
Drakopoulou and Loukaki 1989. E.
Drakopoulou and M. Loukaki. “∞ӤΉÔÙË
ÂÈÛÙÔÏ‹ ÙÔ˘ °ÚËÁÔÚ›Ô˘ ∞ÓÙÈfi¯Ô˘ ÚÔ˜
ÙÔÓ Â›ÛÎÔÔ ∫·ÛÙÔÚ›·˜ ÛÙ· Ù¤ÏË ÙÔ˘ 12Ô˘
·ÈÒÓ·. ¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙËÓ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋
ÈÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘ fiÏ˘.” μ˘˙·ÓÙȷο 9 (1989):
119–37.
Drandakis 1955. N. V. Drandakis.
“ΔÔȯÔÁÚ·Ê›·È Ó·˝ÛÎˆÓ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.”
In ¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ ÙÔ˘ £’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË,
12–19 ∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘ 1953, edited by S. Kyriakidis,
A. Xyngopoulos, and P. Zepos, vol. I,
154–78. ∂ÏÏËÓÈο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 9.
Athens, 1955.
Drandakis 1979–85. N. V. Drandakis. “√È
ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ ÙÔ˘ μ∞ ·ÚÂÎÎÏËÛ›Ô˘ Ù˘
∞Á›·˜ ™ÔÊ›·˜ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” In ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋
∂ÂÙËÚ›˜ Ù˘ ºÈÏÔÛÔÊÈ΋˜ ™¯ÔÏ‹˜ ÙÔ˘
¶·ÓÂÈÛÙËÌ›Ô˘ ∞ıËÓÒÓ 28 (1979–85):
469–501.
Drandakis 1987–88. N. V. Drandakis. “√ ∞˚
°È·ÓÓ¿Î˘ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” DChA∂ 14 (1987–
88): 61–82.
Dräseke 1892: J. Dräseke, “Nikolaos von
Methone.” BZ 1 (1892): 438–78
Drosogianni 1966. F. Drosogianni.
“μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ·› ÙÔȯÔÁÚ·Ê›·È ÂÓÙfi˜ Ï·Í¢ÙÔ‡
Ù¿ÊÔ˘ ÂÓ μÂÚÔ›·.” In ÷ÚÈÛÙ‹ÚÈÔÓ ÂȘ
∞Ó·ÛÙ¿ÛÈÔÓ ∫. √ÚÏ¿Ó‰ÔÓ, vol. 2, 392–420.
Athens, 1966.
Drosos 1997. N. Drosos, Archimandrite.
“∏ ·Ú¯·›· ªÂÏ›‚ÔÈ·.” In ™ÂÏ›‰Â˜ ·fi ÙËÓ
πÛÙÔÚ›· ÙÔ˘ ¯ˆÚÈÔ‡ ªÂÏ›‚ÔÈ· Ù˘ ∞ÁÈ¿˜ (Ù˘
¶·Ï·È¿˜ £·Ó¿ÙÔ˘ ÃÒÚ·˜). ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο Ù˘
∏ÌÂÚ›‰·˜ ’∏ ÈÛÙÔÚÈ΋ ªÂÏ›‚ÔÈ·.’ ∞ÁÈfiηÌÔ˜,
6 ∞˘ÁÔ‡ÛÙÔ˘ 1996, edited by D. K.
Agraphiotis, 15–24. Meliboia, 1997.
Drougou and Touratsoglou 1980. S.
Drougou and I. Touratsoglou. ∂ÏÏËÓÈÛÙÈÎÔ›
Ï·Í¢ÙÔ› Ù¿ÊÔÈ μÂÚÔ›·˜. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯.
¢ÂÏÙ., 28. Athens, 1980.
Drpic’ 2008. I. Drpic’. “Art, Hesychasm, and
Visual Exegesis, Parisinus Graecus 1242
Revisited.” DOP 62 (2008): 217–47.
Duchesne 1879. L. Duchesne. “Inscription
chrétienne de Tanagre.” BCH 3 (1879):
144–46.
Dufrenne 1970. S. Dufrenne. Les programmes
iconographiques des églises Byzantines de
Mistra. Bibliothèque des Cah. Arch., 4.
Paris. 1970.
Dunn 1977. M. Dunn. “Evangelisation or
Repentance? The Re-Christianization of
the Peloponnese in the Ninth and Tenth
Centuries.” In Studies in Church History 14
(1977): 71–86.
Dunn 1994. A. Dunn. “The transition from
polis to kastron in the Balkans (III–VII cc.):
general and regional perspectives.”
Byzantine and Modern Greek Studies 18
(1994): 60–80.
Dunn 1995. A. Dunn. “Historical and
Archaeological Indicators of Economic
Change in Middle Byzantine Boeotia and
Their Problems.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο μ’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ. §ÂÈ‚·‰È¿,
6–10 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1992 = ∂∂μª 2/2 (1995):
755–74.
Dunn 2004. A. Dunn. “A Byzantine fiscal
official’s seal from Knossos excavations and
the archaeology of dark age cities.” In
Creta Romana e Protobizantina. Atti del
Congresso Internazionale. Iraklion, 23–30
Settembre 2000, edited by M. Livadiotti and
I. Simiakaki, vol. I, 139–46. Padua, 2004.
Duval and Popovic’ 1984. N. Duval and V.
Popovic’. “Urbanisme et topographie
chrétienne dans les provinces
septentrionales de l’Illyricum.” In Xe CIAC
1984, vol. 1, 541–79.
EEBM. EÂÙËÚ›˜ Ù˘ ∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜ μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ
ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ.
EEBS. EÂÙËÚ›˜ Ù˘ ∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ.
Eleftheriou and Skagkos 2012. E. P.
Eleftheriou and N. I. Skagkos. “™ˆÛÙÈ΋
·Ó·Ûηʋ ÛÙË ı¤ÛË ∂ÎÎÏËÛȤ˜ μÔ˘ÙÈ¿ÓˆÓ
§·ÎˆÓ›·˜.” In 1Ô ¢ÈÂıÓ¤˜ ™˘Ó¤‰ÚÈÔ, ΔÔ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ŒÚÁÔ ÛÙËÓ ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ.
ΔÚ›ÔÏË, 7–11 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2012 (in press).
Emmanuel 2003. M. Emmanuel. “∏ ∞Á›·
™ÔÊ›· ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿. ¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙȘ
ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ Î·È ÛÙÔ ÂÈÎÔÓÔÁÚ·ÊÈÎfi
ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ·.” In ª›ÏÙÔ˜ °·Ú›‰Ë˜ (1926–1996).
∞ÊȤڈ̷, 153–98. Ioannina, 2003.
Entwistle 2002. Ch. Entwistle. “Byzantine
Weights.” In Laiou 2002, vol. 2, 611–14.
Epstein 1982. A. W. Epstein. “Frescoes of
the Mavriotissa near Kastoria: Evidence of
Millenerism and Anti-Semitism in the Wake
of the First Crusade.” Gesta 21/1 (1982):
21–29.
Etzeoglou 1982a. R. Etzeoglou.
“Karyoupolis. Une ville Byzantine désertée.
Esquisse de géographie historique du nordest du Magne.” Byzantion 52 (1982):
83–123.
Etzeoglou 1982b. R. Etzeoglou. “Quelques
remarques sur les portraits figurés dans les
églises de Mistra.” πn XVI. Internationaler
Byzantinistenkongress. Wien, 4.–9. Oktober
1981. Akten II/5 = JÖB 32/5 (1982): 513–21.
Etzeoglou 2005a. R. Etzeoglou. “Ἐγγράφη
ἐν Μυζιθρᾷ.’ μÈ‚ÏÈÔÁÚ·ÊÈΤ˜ ‰Ú·ÛÙËÚÈfiÙËÙ˜
ÛÙÔÓ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿ ηٿ ÙÔÓ 13o Î·È ÙÔÓ 14o
·ÈÒÓ·.” DChA∂ 26 (2005): 181–98.
Etzeoglou 2005b. R. Etzeoglou. “The Cult of
the Virgin Zoodochos Pege at Mistra.” In
Images of the Mother of God. Perceptions of
the Theotokos in Byzantium, edited by M.
Vassilaki, 239–49. Aldershot, 2005.
Etzeoglou 2009. R. Etzeoglou. “∫›ÌÂÓÔ Î·È
ÂÈÎfiÓ·: ¶·Ú·ÛÙ¿ÛÂȘ ÛÙÔ Ó¿ÚıËη ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡
Ù˘ √‰ËÁ‹ÙÚÈ·˜ ÛÙÔÓ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” In æËÊ›‰Â˜.
ªÂϤÙ˜ IÛÙÔÚ›·˜, ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È T¤¯Ó˘ ÛÙË
ªÓ‹ÌË Ù˘ ™Ù¤ÏÏ·˜ ¶··‰¿ÎË-Oekland, edited
by O. Gratziou and C. Loukos, 133–44.
Herakleion, 2009.
Etzeoglou 2013. R. Etzeoglou. √ Ó·fi˜ Ù˘
√‰ËÁ‹ÙÚÈ·˜ ÙÔ˘ μÚÔÓÙÔ¯›Ô˘ ÛÙÔÓ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿. √È
ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ ÙÔ˘ Ó¿ÚıËη Î·È Ë ÏÂÈÙÔ˘ÚÁÈ΋
¯Ú‹ÛË ÙÔ˘ ¯ÒÚÔ˘. ¶Ú·ÁÌ·Ù›·È Ù˘
∞η‰ËÌ›·˜ ∞ıËÓÒÓ, 67. Athens, 2013.
Eugenidou 1988. D. Eugenidou. “Servia and
Moglena. Two Byzantine cities of
Macedonia.” πÛÙÔÚÈÎÔÁˆÁÚ·ÊÈο 2 (1988):
15–22.
Eugenidou 2001. ªÔÓÂÌ‚·ÛÈ¿. ∞ÓÙÈΛÌÂÓ·–
¶ÂÚÈ‚¿ÏÏÔÓ –πÛÙÔÚ›·. ∏ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋ ™˘ÏÏÔÁ‹,
edited by D. Eugenidou. ∞thens, 2001.
Eustathios 1961. Eustazio di Tessalonica, La
espugnazione di Tessalonica, edited by S.
Kyriakidis. Testi e monumenti. Testi, 5.
Palermo, 1961.
Evangelidis 1937. D. Evangelidis.
“∂ÈÎÔÓÔÌ·¯Èο ÌÓËÌ›· ÂÓ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.”
∞∂ (1937): 341–51.
Evangelidis 1954. D. Evangelidis. ∏ ¶·Ó·Á›·
ÙˆÓ Ã·ÏΤˆÓ. ¢ËÌÔÛ. Ù˘ ∂Ù. ÙˆÓ º›ÏˆÓ Ù˘
μ˘˙. ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·˜, 4. Thessalonike, 1954.
Expositio 1966. Expositio totius mundi et
gentium, edited by J. Rougé. Sources
chrétiennes, 124. Paris, 1966.
Fabricius 1890. E. Fabricius. Theben; eine
Untersuchung ueber die Topographie und
Geschichte der Hauptstadt Boeotiens.
Freiburg, 1890.
Faraklas 1996. N. Faraklas. “£Ë‚·˚ο.” ∞∂
135 (1996): 1–238.
Fedalto 1974. G. Fedalto. “La chiesa latina
nel regno di Thessalonica 1204–1224,
1423–1430.” ∂∂μS 41 (1974): 88–102.
Fedalto 1981–82. G. Fedalto. “Annotazioni
sui vescovadi latini della Morea franca e
l’arcivescovado latino di Corinto, durante il
secolo XIII.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘ μ’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛÈ·ÎÒÓ ™Ô˘‰ÒÓ.
¶¿ÙÚ·È, 25–31 ª·˝Ô˘ 1980, vol. II, 296–304.
¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 8. Athens,
1981–82.
Feissel 1987. D. Feissel. “Inscriptions de
Thessalie. Première partie: inscriptions de
IVe au VIe siècle.” TM 10 (1987): 359–67
and 387–93.
FelRav. Felix Ravenna.
Forbes 1958. J. Forbes. Studies in Ancient
Technology, vol. 6, Heat and Heating:
Refrigeration, the Art of Cooling and
Producing Cold: Light. Leiden, 1958.
Foss 2002. C. Foss. “Life in City and
Country.” In The Oxford History of
Byzantium, edited by C. Mango, 71–95.
Oxford, 2002.
Foss 2003. C. Foss. “Pilgrimage in Medieval
Asia Minor.” DOP 56 (2003): 129–51.
Foss and Cutler 1991. C. Foss and A. Cutler.
“Cities.” ODB, vol. 1, 464–66.
Foss and Winfield 1986. C. Foss and D.
Winfield. Byzantine Fortifications. Pretoria,
1986.
Fountoukou 1985. M. Fountoukou.
“¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙÔ ·Ì˘ÓÙÈÎfi Û‡ÛÙËÌ· ÙˆÓ
ÙÂȯÒÓ Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” ∏ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË
1 (1985): 111–57.
Fowden 1999. E. Fowden. “Greece.” In
Boersock, Brown, and Grabar 1999,
475–76.
François and Spieser 2002. V. François
and J.-M. Spieser. “Pottery and Glass in
Byzantium.” In Laiou 2002, vol. 2,
593–609.
Frantz 1965. A. Frantz. “From Paganism to
Christianity in the Temples of Athens.”
DOP 19 (1965): 187–205.
Frantz 1971. A. Frantz. The Middle Ages in the
Athenian Agora. Excavations at the
Athenian Agora. Picture book, 7.
Princeton, N.J., 1971.
Frantz 1979. A. Frantz. “Did Julian the
Apostate rebuild the Parthenon?” AJA
(1979): 395–401.
Frantz 1988. A. Frantz. Late Antiquity. The
Athenian Agora, XXIV. Princeton, N.J.,
1988.
Friesen 2010. S. J. Friesen. “Second
Thessalonians, the Ideology of Epistles,
and the Construction of Authority: Our
Debt to the Forger.” In Nasrallah et al.
2010, 189–210.
Galani-Krikou 1992. M. Galani-Krikou.
“™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙËÓ Î˘ÎÏÔÊÔÚ›· ÙˆÓ
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎÒÓ ÓÔÌÈÛÌ¿ÙˆÓ ÛÙÔ ¢ÂÛÔÙ¿ÙÔ
Ù˘ ∏›ÚÔ˘ (1204–1449).” In Chrysos
1992, 125–61.
Galani-Krikou 1997. M. Galani-Krikou.
“£‹‚·: 10Ô˜–14Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜. ∏ ÓÔÌÈÛÌ·ÙÈ΋
Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›· ·fi ÙËÓ ∞Á›· ΔÚÈ¿‰·.” ™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ·
11 (1997): 113–50.
Galani-Krikou 1998. M. Galani-Krikou.
“£‹‚·, 6Ô˜–15Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜. ∏ ÓÔÌÈÛÌ·ÙÈ΋
Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›· ·fi ÙÔ ¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÙÈÎfi ∫¤ÓÙÚÔ.”
™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 12 (1998): 141–70.
Geanakoplos 1953. D. J. Geanakoplos.
“Greco–Latin relations on the eve of the
Byzantine restoration: the Battle of
Pelagonia–1259.” D√P 7 (1953): 99–141.
Gell 1827. W. Gell. The itinerary of Greece,
containing one hundred routes in Attica,
Boeotia, Phokis, Locris and Thessaly. 2 vols.
London, 1827.
Gelzer 1902. H. Gelzer. Der Patriarchat von
Achrida. Geschichte und Urkunden. Leipzig,
1902.
Georgopoulou-Verra 1980. M.
Georgopoulou-Verra. “æËÊȉˆÙfi ‰¿Â‰Ô
·fi ÙË £‹‚·.” ∞∞∞ 13 (1980): 139–52.
Georgopoulou-Verra 2002. ª.
Georgopoulou-Verra. “H ÚÒÙË
ÔÈÎÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ Ê¿ÛË ÙÔ˘ οÛÙÚÔ˘ Ù˘
¶¿ÙÚ·˜.” In Themelis and Konti 2002,
161–73.
Georgopoulou-Verra 2005. M.
Georgopoulou-Verra, “ΔÔ Î¿ÛÙÚÔ Ù˘
¶¿ÙÚ·˜.” In ¶¿ÙÚ· ·fi ÙËÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ· ¤ˆ˜
Û‹ÌÂÚ·, edited by Δ. ∂. Sklavenitis and ∫. S.
Staikos, 100–27. Athens, 2005.
Georgopoulou-Verra et al. 1997. M.
Georgopoulou-Verra, Z. Mylona, K.
Skarmoutsou, D. Athanasoulis, A.
Koumousi, D. Rigakou. A. Moutzali, F.
Cooper, J. Alchermes, T. E. Gregory, C. K.
Williams, ππ., et al. “6Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 52 (1997): Chronika
μ1, 313–50.
Georgopoulou-Verra et al. 2000. M.
Georgopoulou-Verra, A. Moutzali, Z.
Mylona, K. Skarmoutsou-Dimitropoulou,
D. Rigakou, A. Koumousi, D. Athanasoulis,
and T. E. Gregory. “6Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 55 (2000): Chronika
μ1, 347–75.
Georgopoulou-Verra et al. 2001–4. M.
Georgopoulou-Verra, A. G. Moutzali, A.
Koumousi, K. Skarmoutsou, D.
Athanasoulis, D. Rigakou, and T. E.
Gregory. “6Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 56-59 (2001–4):
Chronika μ4, ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ˜, 579–614.
Gerola 1905–32. G. Gerola. Monumenti
Veneti nell’isola di Creta. 4 vols. Venice,
1905–32.
Gerolymatou 1997. M. Gerolymatou. “∏
£‹‚· ΤÓÙÚÔ ÂÌÔÚ›Ô˘ Î·È ÂÈÎÔÈÓˆÓÈÒÓ
ÙÔÓ 12Ô ·ÈÒÓ·.” ™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 11 (1997):
97–111.
Gerolymatou 2008. M. Gerolymatou. ∞ÁÔÚ¤˜,
¤ÌÔÚÔÈ Î·È ÂÌfiÚÈÔ ÛÙÔ μ˘˙¿ÓÙÈÔ (9Ô˜–12Ô˜
·È.). ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó.
ªÔÓÔÁڷʛ˜, 9. Athens, 2008.
Gerousi 2007. E. Gerousi. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÔ‡ ÏËÓÔ‡ ¢ÈÛÙfiÌÔ˘.”
ADelt (2007) (in press).
Gerstel 2003. S. Gerstel. “Civic and Monastic
Influences on Church Decoration in Late
Byzantine Thessalonike.” DOP 57 (2003):
225–39.
Gerstel 2013. S. E. J. Gerstel. “Mapping the
Boundaries of Church and Village.
Ecclesiastical and Rural Landscapes in the
Late Byzantine Peloponnese.” In Viewing
the Morea: Land and People in the Late
Medieval Peloponnese, edited by S. E. J.
Gerstel, 335–68. Washington, D.C., 2013.
Ghini-Tsofopoulou 2001. E. GhiniTsofopoulou. “Δ· ‘ªÂÛfiÁÂÈ·’ ·fi ÙËÓ
ÂÈÎÚ¿ÙËÛË ÙÔ˘ ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÛÌÔ‡ ¤ˆ˜ ÙËÓ
√ıˆÌ·ÓÈ΋ ηٿÎÙËÛË.” In ªÂÛÔÁ·›·.
πÛÙÔÚ›· Î·È ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌfi˜ ÙˆÓ ªÂÛÔÁ›ˆÓ ∞ÙÙÈ΋˜,
edited by G. Aikaterinidis, 148–97. Athens,
2001.
Ghini-Tsofopoulou et al. 2001–4. E. GhiniTsofopoulou, Ch. Koilakou, K. Karathanasi,
D. Petrou, and G. Kakavas. “1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 56–59
(2001–4): Chronika μ2, ™ÙÂÚ¿ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·–
£ÂÛÛ·Ï›·, 15–68.
Ghini-Tsofopoulou et al. 2012. E. GhiniTsofopoulou, Ch. Koilakou, Ai. Pantelidou,
and A. Kavvadia. “1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” In Andreadaki-Vlazaki
2012, 33–40.
Gialouri 2006. A. Gialouri. “∞ÁÚÔÈΛ·–
μÈÔÙ¯ÓÈ΋ ÂÁηٿÛÙ·ÛË ÛÙË ı¤ÛË ‘ÕÁ.
¢ËÌ‹ÙÚÈÔ˜’ ∫·ÈÓÔ‡ÚÁÈÔ˘ ¡. ºıÈÒÙȉԘ.”
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ¤ÚÁÔ £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜ Î·È ™ÙÂÚ¿˜
∂ÏÏ¿‰·˜ 2/II (2006): 1247–64.
Giannopoulos 1969–70. I. Giannopoulos. “∏
¶ÂÚÈ‹ÁËÛȘ ÙÔ˘ ∂‚ÏÈ¿ ΔÛÂÏÂÌ‹ ·Ó¿ ÙËÓ
∂ÏÏ¿‰·.” ∂ÂÙËÚ›˜ ∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜
™ÙÂÚÂÔÂÏÏ·‰ÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ 2 (1969–70):
139–98.
Giannopoulos 1989. Ph. Giannopoulos.
¢È‰˘ÌfiÙÂȯԖπÛÙÔÚ›· ÂÓfi˜ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ Ô¯˘ÚÔ‡.
Athens, 1989.
Giannopoulos 1999–2000. P. A.
Giannopoulos. “πÛÙÔÚÈΤ˜ ÏËÚÔÊÔڛ˜
ÙÔ˘ £ÂÔ‰ÒÚÔ˘ ¡Èη›·˜ ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ∞ÚÁÔÏ›‰·.”
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi˜ ¢fiÌÔ˜ 10–11 (1999–2000):
149–62.
Gigourtakis 2004. N. Gigourtakis. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜
Ô¯˘ÚÒÛÂȘ ÛÙËÓ ∫Ú‹ÙË Î·Ù¿ ÙË μ’ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô (961–1204). M.A. thesis.
Rethymnon, 2004.
Gill 1970. J. Gill. “Emperor Andronicus II and
Patriarch Athanasius I.” μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ 2 (1970):
13–19.
Ginouvès 1957. R. Ginouvès. “La mosaique
de mois à Argos.” BCH 81 (1957): 216–68.
Gkioles 2005. N. Gkioles. H Aı‹Ó· ÛÙÔ˘˜
ÚÒÙÔ˘˜ ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÔ‡˜ ·ÈÒÓ˜, ¶ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋
ÂͤÏÈÍË. Athens, 2005.
Gkioles 2006. N. Gkioles. “∞ÁÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi
ΛÌÂÓÔ Î·È ÂÈÎfiÓ·. ∏ ÂÚ›ÙˆÛË ÙÔ˘
„ËÊȉˆÙÔ‡ Ù˘ ªÔÓ‹˜ §·ÙfiÌÔ˘ ÛÙË
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.” ∂∂μS 42 (2006): 205–26.
Gouma-Peterson 1976. Th. Gouma-
Peterson. “The Parekklesion of St.
Euthymios in Thessaloniki: Art and
Monastic Policy under Andronicos II.”
Art Bulletin 58 (1976): 168–83.
Gouma-Peterson 1991. Th. GoumaPeterson. “The Parekklesion of St.
Euthymios in Thessaloniki: Patrons,
Workshops and Style.” In The Twilight of
Byzantium. Aspects of Cultural and Religious
History in the Late Byzantine Empire, edited
by S. C’určic’ and D. Mouriki, 111–29.
Princeton, N.J., 1991.
Gounaris 1984. G. Gounaris. “Le problème
de l’existence de deux ambons dans
l’Octogone des Philippes.” In Xe CIAC 1984,
vol. II, 133–40.
Gounaris 1990. G. Gounaris. ΔÔ ‚·Ï·ÓÂ›Ô Î·È
Ù· ‚fiÚÂÈ· ÚÔÛÎÙ›ÛÌ·Ù· ÙÔ˘ √ÎÙ·ÁÒÓÔ˘ ÙˆÓ
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù.,
112. ∞thens, 1990.
Gounaris 1997. V. K. Gounaris.
“£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË, 1830–1912: ÈÛÙÔÚ›·,
ÔÈÎÔÓÔÌ›· Î·È ÎÔÈÓˆÓ›·.” In Τοῖς ἀγαθοῖς
βασιλεύουσα. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË, πÛÙÔÚ›· ηÈ
¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌfi˜, edited by I. K. Chasiotis, 117–33.
Thessalonike, 1997.
Gounaris 1999. G. Gounaris. ∂ÈÛ·ÁˆÁ‹ ÛÙËÓ
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·, ∞’,
∞Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋. Thessalonike, 1999.
Gounaris and Velenis 1996. G. Gounaris and
G. Velenis. “¶·ÓÂÈÛÙËÌȷ΋ ·Ó·Ûηʋ
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ 1988–1996.” ∞∂ª£ 10μ (1996):
719–33.
Gounaris et al. 1981. G. Gounaris, A.
Mentzos, A. Bakirtzis, Ch. Bakirtzis, and E.
Pelekanidou. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ √ÎÙ·ÁÒÓÔ˘
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” P∞∂ (1981): 8–17.
Gounaris et al. 1982. G. Gounaris, A.
Mentzos, A. Bakirtzis, Ch. Bakirtzis, and E.
Pelekanidou. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ √ÎÙ·ÁÒÓÔ˘
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” P∞∂ (1982): 31–42.
Gounaris et al. 1983. G. Gounaris, A.
Mentzos, A. Bakirtzis, Ch. Bakirtzis, and E.
Pelekanidou. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ √ÎÙ·ÁÒÓÔ˘
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” P∞∂ (1983) ∞’: 30–34.
Grabar 1962. A. Grabar. “Recherches sur les
sources juives de l’art paléochrétien.”
CArch 12 (1962): 115–52.
Grabar 1984. A. Grabar. L’iconoclasm
byzantin. Le dossier archéologique. Paris,
1984.
Grabar and Manousakas 1979. A. Grabar
and M. Manousakas. L’illustration du
manuscrit de Skylitzes. Bibliothèque de
l’Institut hellénique d’études byzantines et
post-byzantines de Venise, 10. Venice, 1979.
Granstrem et al. 1976. E. Granstrem, I.
Medvedev, and D. Papachryssanthou.
“Fragment d’un Praktikon de la région
d’Athènes (avant 1204).” REB 34 (1976):
5–44.
Gratziou 2006. O. Graziou.“. . . ÚÔ˜ ‰fiÍ·Ó
Ù˘ Ù ∂ÎÎÏËÛ›·˜ Î·È Ù˘ ¶·ÙÚ›‰Ô˜, ΔÔ
ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfiÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfiÓ ªÔ˘Û›ÔÓ Î·È
Ô °ÂÒÚÁÈÔ˜ §·Ì¿Î˘.” In Athens 2006,
37–52.
Gravani 2007. K. Gravani. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈΤ˜
Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›Â˜ ÁÈ· ÙÔ Û˘ÓÔÈÎÈÛÌfi ÛÙË ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË.”
In Zachos 2007, vol. 1, 101–22.
Grégoire 1934. H. Grégoire. “Une
Epigramme Gréco-Bulgare.” Byzantion 9
(1934): 795–99.
Gregorovius 1889. F. Gregorovius. Geschichte
der Stadt Athen im Mittelalter von der Zeit
Justinians bis zur türkischen Eroberung.
Stuttgart, 1889.
Gregory 1979. T. Gregory. “The Late Roman
Wall at Corinth.” Hesperia 48 (1979):
264–80.
Gregory 1982. T. Gregory. “Fortification and
Urban Design in early Byzantine Greece.”
In City, Town and Countryside in the Early
Byzantine Era, edited by R. L. Holhlfelder,
43–64. New York, 1982.
Gregory 1984. Δ. Gregory. “Diporto: An
Early Byzantine maritime settlement in the
gulf Ôf Corinth.” DChAE 12 (1984), 287-304.
Gregory 1987. T. Gregory. “The early
Byzantine Fortifications of Nikopolis in
comparative perspective.” In Chrysos
1987, 253–61.
Gregory 1993. T. E. Gregory. The Hexamilion
and the Fortress. Isthmia, V. Princeton, N.J.,
1993.
Guiglia Guidobaldi 1987. A. Guiglia
Guidobaldi. “Il mosaico dell’ ambone della
basilica B di Nicopolis.” In Chrysos 1987,
279–93.
Hadjiminaglou 1980. G. Hadjiminaglou.
“L’église de la Théotokos au cimetière
d’Argos.” In Études Argiennes, 493–99.
BCH. Suppl., VI. Paris, 1980.
Haldon 1997. J. F. Haldon. Byzantium in the
7th century. The transformation of a culture.
Cambridge, 1997.
Halkin 1959–60. F. Halkin. “Le règne de
Constantin d’après la chronique inédite du
Pseudo-Syméon.” Byzantion 29–30 (1959–
60): 7–27.
Hallensleben 1969. H. Hallensleben.
“Untersuchungen zur Genesis und
Typologie des ‘Mistratypus.’” Marburger
Jahrbuch für Kunstwissenschaft 18 (1969):
105–18.
Hammond 1972a. M. Hammond. The City in
the Ancient World. Cambridge, Mass., 1972.
Hammond 1972b. N. G. L. Hammond. A
History of Macedonia. Oxford, 1972.
Hammond and Walbank 1988. N. G. L.
Hammond and F. W. Walbank. A History of
Macedonia, III: 336–167 B.C. Oxford, 1988.
Hatzopoulos 1990. M. B. Hatzopoulos.
“ÃÒÚ· Î·È ÎÒ̘ Ù˘ μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜.” In ªÓ‹ÌË
¢. §·˙·Ú›‰Ë, ¶fiÏȘ Î·È ¯ÒÚ· ÛÙËÓ ∞Ú¯·›·
ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· Î·È £Ú¿ÎË, ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ. ∫·‚¿Ï·, 9–11
ª·˝Ô˘ 1986, 57–67. Thessalonike, 1990.
Hayes 1972. J. W. Hayes. Late Roman Pottery.
London, 1972.
Hellenkemper 1987. H. Hellenkemper. “Die
byzantinische Stadtmauer von Nikopolis in
Epeiros. Ein kaiserlicher Bauauftrag des 5.
oder 6. Jahrhunderts.” In Chrysos 1987,
243–51.
Hellenkemper-Salies 1987. G.
Hellenkemper-Salies. “Zu Stil und
Ikonographie in den frühbyzantinischen
Mosaiken von Nikopolis.” In Chrysos 1987,
295–310.
Herrin 1970. J. Herrin. “The Collapse of the
Byzantine Empire in the Twelfth Century.
A Study of Mediaeval Economy.” University
of Birmingham Hist. Journal 12 (1970):
188–203.
Herrin 1973. J. Herrin. “Aspects of the
Process of Hellenization in the Early Middle
Ages.” BSA 68 (1973): 113–26 (reprinted
in Herrin 2013, 33–57).
Herrin 1975. J. Herrin. “Realities of Provincial
Government: Hellas and Peloponnesos,
1180–1205.” DOP 29 (1975): 253–84
(reprinted in Herrin 2013, 58–110).
Herrin 2001. J. Herrin. Women in purple: three
Byzantine empresses. London, 2001.
Herrin 2013. J. Herrin. Margins and Metropolis.
Authority across the Byzantine empire.
Princeton, N.J., 2013.
Herrin 2013a. J. Herrin. “The ecclesiastical
organization of Central Greece at the time
of Michael Choniates. New Evidence from
the codex Atheniensis 1371.” In Herrin
2013, 103–10.
Hirshfeld 1999. Y. Hirshfeld. “Habitat.” In
Boersock, Brown, and Grabar 1999, 258–72.
Honigmann 1939. E. Honigmann. “La liste
originale des pères de Nicée.” Byzantion 14
(1939): 17–76.
Hunger 1990. H. Hunger. “Athen in Byzanz:
| 281 |
Traum und Realität.” JÖB 40 (1990): 43–61.
Husluck 1911. F. W. Husluck. “The Latin
monuments of Chios.” BSA (1911): 137–84.
Hutter 1982. I. Hutter. Corpus der
byzantinischen Miniaturenhandschriften, 3.1:
Oxford Bodleian Library III. Stuttgart, 1982.
Iatridou 1976. E. Iatridou. “∂ÈÌÂÏËÙ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ μfiÏÔ˘.” ADelt 31
(1976): Chronika μ1, 189–92.
π∂∂. πÛÙÔÚ›· ÙÔ˘ ∂ÏÏËÓÈÎÔ‡ ŒıÓÔ˘˜.
πG. Inscriptiones Graecae.
Ilieva 1991. A. Ilieva. Frankish Morea (1205–
1262). Socio-cultural Interaction between the
Franks and the Local Population. Historical
monographs, 9. Athens, 1991.
Ioannidaki et al. 1986. E. Ioannidaki, S.
Choulia, A. Dina, A. Smpyraki-Kalantzi,
and S. Sdrolia. “7Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 41 (1986): Chronika,
79–99.
Ioannidou-Karetsou 2008. ∏Ú¿ÎÏÂÈÔ. ∏
¿ÁÓˆÛÙË ÈÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘ ·Ú¯·›·˜ fiÏ˘, edited
by A. Ioannidou-Karetsou, Herakleion,
2008.
Ioannidou-Karetsou 2008a. A. IoannidouKaretsou. “πÛÙÔÚÈο Î·È ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο
™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ·.” πn Ioannidou-Karetsou 2008,
27–105.
Irmscher 1987. J. Irmscher. “Nikopolis in der
Reiseliteratur der Türkenzeit.” In Chrysos
1987, 369–94.
Ivison 1996. E. Ivison. “Burial and Urbanism
at Late Antique and Early Byzantine
Corinth (c. 400–700).” In Towns in
Transition, Urban Evolution in Late Antiquity
and the Early Middle Ages, edited by N.
Christie and S. T. Loseby, 99–125.
Aldershot, 1996.
Ivison 2000. E. Ivison. “Urban Renewal and
Imperial Revival (730–1025).” ByzF 26
(2000): 1–46.
Jacoby 1991–92. D. Jacoby. “Silk in Western
Byzantium before the Fourth Crusade.” BZ
84–85 (1991–92), 452–500.
Jacoby 2003. D. Jacoby. “Foreigners and the
Urban Economy in Thessalonike, ca. 1150–
ca. 1450.” DOP 57 (2003): 85–132.
Janin 1958. R. Janin. “L’église latine à
Thessalonique de 1204 à la conquête
turque.” REB 16 (1958): 207–10.
Janin 1975. R. Janin. Les églises et les
monastères des grands centres byzantins
(Bithynie, Hellespont, Latros, Galèsios,
Trébizonde, Athènes, Thessalonique).
Géographie ecclésiastique de l’Empire
byzantin, 2. Paris, 1975.
Jaubert 1975. P. A. Jaubert. La Géographie
d’Edrisi. Amsterdam, 1975.
Jeffreys 2013. E. Jeffreys. “The Morea
through the Prism of the Past.” In Viewing
the Morea: Land and People in the Late
Medieval Peloponnese, edited by S. E. J.
Gerstel, 9–21. Washington, D.C., 2013.
JHS. The Journal of Hellenic Studies.
JÖB. Jahrbuch der Österreichischen Byzantinistik.
John Geometres 1863. Carmina varia. PG
106 (1863): coll. 901–1002.
John Kaminiates 1973. Ioannis Caminiatae de
expugnationae Thessalonicae, edited by G.
Böhling. CFHB, 4. Berlin, 1973.
John Kaminiates 2000. John Kaminiates, The
Capture of Thessaloniki, translation,
introduction, and notes by D. Fendo and
A. Fotiou. Byzantina Australiensia, 12.
Perth, 2000.
John Kantakouzenos 1828–32. Ioannis
Cantacuzeni Eximperatoris Historiarum Libri IV
Graece et Latine, edited by L. Schopen. 3
vols. CSHB. Bonn, 1828–32.
John Mauropous 1882. Johannis Euchaitarum
metropolitae quae supersunt in cod. Vaticano
graeco 676, edited by P. de Lagarde and J.
Bollig. Berlin, 1882.
John of Damascus 1981. John of Damascus,
| 282 |
De haeresibus, edited by P. B. Kotter, Die
Schriften des Johannes von Damaskos, vol. 4.
Patristische Texte und Studien, 22. Berlin
1981, 19–67.
JRS. The Journal of Roman Studies.
Kakouris et al. 1978. I. Kakouris, Ai. Giaouri,
and A. Moutzali. “∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ ™¿ÚÙ˘.” ADelt 33 (1978):
Chronika B1, 103–107.
Kakouris et al. 2004. £ˆÚ¿ÎÈÔÓ. ∞ÊȤڈ̷
ÛÙË ÌÓ‹ÌË ÙÔ˘ ¶·‡ÏÔ˘ §·˙·Ú›‰Ë, edited by I.
Kakouris, S. Choulia, and J. Albani, ∞thens,
2004.
Kalaitzakis 1996. Ph. Kalaitzakis. “∏ £‹‚·
ÛÙË ‰È¿ÚÎÂÈ· ÙˆÓ ÛÎÔÙÂÈÓÒÓ ¯ÚfiÓˆÓ (Ù¤ÏË
6Ô˘–Ù¤ÏË 9Ô˘ ·È.).” μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ·› ªÂÏ¤Ù·È 2
(1996): 603–45.
Kalaitzakis 1997. Ph. Kalaitzakis. “∏
μÔȈÙÈ΋ ∂ÎÎÏËÛ›· ÛÙË ‰È¿ÚÎÂÈ· ÙÔ˘ 10Ô˘
·È.” μ˘˙·ÓÙȷο 17 (1997): 420–36.
Kalamara 2000. P. Kalamara. “Le costume à
Mistra à la fin de la période Paléologue:
données provenant de la fouille des
tombes de Sainte Sophie.” In MartinianiReber 2000, 105–18.
Kalamara 2005. πÛÙÔڛ˜ £ÚËÛ΢ÙÈ΋˜ ¶›ÛÙ˘
ÛÙË ª¿ÓË, edited by P. Kalamara. ¢›ÎÙ˘Ô
MÔ˘Û›ˆÓ ª¿Ó˘, 2. Athens, 2005.
Kalamara and Roumeliotis 2004. ª·ÓÈ¿ÙÈÎÔÈ
√ÈÎÈÛÌÔ›, edited by P. Kalamara and N.
Roumeliotis. Athens, 2004.
Kalamara and Valansot 2000. P. Kalamara
and O. Valansot. “Les tissus de Sainte
Sophia de Mistra: techniques de
fabrication et armures.” In MartinianiReber 2000, 119–32.
Kaldellis 2007. A. Kaldellis. Hellenism in
Byzantium. The Transformations of Greek
Identity and the Reception of the Classical
Tradition. Cambridge and New York, 2007.
Kaldellis 2009. A. Kaldellis. The Christian
Parthenon: Classicism and Pilgrimage in
Byzantine Athens. Cambridge, 2009.
Kalliga 2003. H. Kalliga. ∏ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ªÔÓÂÌ‚·Û›· Î·È ÔÈ ËÁ¤˜ Ù˘ ÈÛÙÔÚ›·˜ Ù˘.
Athens, 2003.
Kalliga 2010. H. Kalliga. ªÔÓÂÌ‚·Û›·. ª›·
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ fiÏȘ-ÎÚ¿ÙÔ˜. Athens, 2010.
Kalligas 1990. H. Kalligas. Byzantine
Monemvasia. The Sources. Introduction by Sir
Steven Runciman. Monemvasia, 1990.
Kalligas and Kalliga 1985–86. A. Kalligas
and H. Kalliga. “ΔÔ Û›ÙÈ ÙÔ˘ §¿ÛηÚË ÛÙÔ
ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” DChA∂ 13 (1985–86): 261–78.
Kalopissi-Verti 1984. S. Kalopissi-Verti.
“Tendenze stilistiche della pittura
monumentale in Grecia durante il XIII
secolo.” CorsRav 31 (1984): 221–53.
Kalopissi-Verti 1992. S. Kalopissi-Verti.
Dedicatory inscriptions and donor portraits in
thirteenth-century churches of Greece. Österr.
Ak. der Wiss. Philos.-hist. Klasse,
Denkschr., 226. Veröff. der Kommision für
die TIB, 5. Vienna, 1992.
Kalopissi-Verti 2003. S. Kalopissi-Verti.
“Church Inscriptions as Documents:
Chrysobulls–Ecclesiastical Acts–Inventories–
Donations–Wills.” DCh∞∂ 24 (2003):
79–88.
Kambouri-Vamvoukou 1984. M. KambouriVamvoukou. “∞Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈο ÁÏ˘Ù¿ ·fi
ÙÔÓ ÕÁÈÔ ªËÓ¿ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” In Xe CIAC
1984, vol. II, 225–40.
Kambouri-Vamvoukou 1989. M. KambouriVamvoukou. “√ Ó·fi˜ ÙÔ˘ ∞Á›Ô˘ ªËÓ¿ ÛÙË
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË. ¡¤Ô˜ Ù‡Ô˜ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋˜
·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋˜.” In ∂ÎÎÏËۛ˜ ÛÙËÓ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·
ÌÂÙ¿ ÙËÓ ÕψÛË, vol. 3, 13–31. ∞thens, 1989.
Kambouroglous 1889. D. Kambouroglous.
IÛÙÔÚ›· ÙˆÓ AıËÓÒÓ. 2 vols. Athens, 1889.
Kamperidis 1993. L. Kamperidis. The Greek
Monasteries of Sozopolis XIV–XVII centuries.
Institute for Balkan Studies, 242.
Thessalonike, 1993.
Kanaki and Papagianakis 2012. E. Kanaki
and E. Papagianakis. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈΤ˜
¤Ú¢Ó˜ ÛÙËÓ ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ ÙÔ˘ ·Ú¿ÎÙÈÔ˘ Ù›¯Ô˘˜
ÙÔ˘ ∏Ú·ÎÏ›Ԣ.” In Andrianakis et al.
2012, 356–63.
Kanatsoulis 1953–55. D. K. Kanatsoulis. “ΔÔ
∫ÔÈÓfiÓ ÙˆÓ ª·Î‰fiÓˆÓ.” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 3
(1953–55): 27–102.
Kanetakis 1994. J. G. Kanetakis. ΔÔ ∫¿ÛÙÚÔ:
™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙËÓ ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ πÛÙÔÚ›· ÙˆÓ
πˆ·ÓÓ›ÓˆÓ. Athens, 1994.
Kanta-Kitsou et al. 2008. A. Kanta-Kitsou,
O. Palli, and I. Anagnostou. ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi
ªÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô ∏ÁÔ˘ÌÂÓ›ÙÛ·˜. Hegoumenitsa,
2008.
Kaplan 1992. M. Kaplan. Les hommes et la
terre. Byzance du VIe au XIe siècle: propriété et
exploitation du sol. Byzantina Sorbonensia,
10. Paris, 1992.
Kappas and Fousteris 2006. M. Kappas and
G. Fousteris. “∂·ÓÂͤٷÛË ‰‡Ô Ó·ÒÓ ÙÔ˘
™ÔÊÈÎÔ‡ ∫ÔÚÈÓı›·˜.” DChAE 27 (2006):
61–72.
Karadedos and Koukouli-Chrysanthaki
1993. G. Karadedos and Ch. KoukouliChrysanthaki. “™Î¤„ÂȘ ÁÈ· ·Ó·ÏËÌÌ·ÙÈÎÔ‡˜
ÙÔ›¯Ô˘˜ Î·È ÙȘ ·Úfi‰Ô˘˜ ÙÔ˘ ·Ú¯·›Ô˘
ı¿ÙÚÔ˘ ÙˆÓ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” ∞∂ª£ 7 (1993):
519–27.
Karadedos and Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou
1997. G. Karadedos and E. KourkoutidouNikolaidou. “√ ÚÈȉÈfiÛ¯ËÌÔ˜ ¿Ì‚ˆÓ·˜ ÙˆÓ
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ: Ë ÚfiÎÏËÛË Ù˘ ·ÔηٿÛÙ·Û˘
Î·È Ù˘ ÌÔ˘ÛÂÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋˜ ·ÚÔ˘Û›·Û‹˜ ÙÔ˘.”
∞∂ª£ 11 (1997): 573–84.
Karagianni 2005. F. Karagianni. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
¿ÁÓˆÛÙÔ˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ Ó·Ô‡ ÛÙË μ¤ÚÔÈ·.”
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ 25 (2005): 403–21.
Karagianni 2010. F. Karagianni. √È ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ›
ÔÈÎÈÛÌÔ› ÛÙË ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· ̤۷ ·fi Ù·
·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ‰Â‰Ô̤ӷ (4Ô˜–5Ô˜ ·È.).
∞ÊÈÂÚÒÌ·Ù·, 2. Thessalonike, 2010.
Karagiorgou 2001a. O. Karagiorgou.
Urbanism and Economy in Late Antique
Thessaly (3rd–7th century A.D.): The
archaeological Evidence. 3 vols. Oxford,
2001. ∂-published in the National
Archive of Ph.D. Theses of the ∂∫Δ–
The National Documentation Centre
(http://www.ekt.gr/en/) under the address:
http://phdtheses.ekt.gr/eadd/handle/10442
/29000.
Karagiorgou 2001b. O. Karagiorgou.
“Demetrias and Thebes: the fortunes and
misfortunes of two Thessalian port-cities in
Late Antiquity.” In Recent Research in LateAntique Urbanism, edited by L. Laven,
182–215. Journal of Roman Archaeology
Supplementary Series, 42. Portsmouth,
2001.
Karagiorgou 2001c. O. Karagiorgou. “The
Late Roman 2 amphora: a container for
the military annona on the Danubian
border?” In Economy and Exchange in the
East Mediterranean during Late Antiquity,
edited by S. Kingsley and M. Decker,
129–66. Oxford, 2001.
Karamesini-Oikonomidou 1975. M.
Karamesini-Oikonomidou. ∏ ¡ÔÌÈÛÌ·ÙÔÎÔ›·
Ù˘ ¡ÈÎÔfiψ˜. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯.
∂Ù., 79. Athens, 1975.
Karapidakis 2012. N. E. Karapidakis. “OÈ
fiÏÂȘ ÙˆÓ ·Ú¯fiÓÙˆÓ. ∏ ‰˘Ó·ÌÈ΋ Î·È Ù·
fiÚÈ· ÂÓfi˜ Ù‡Ô˘ ·ÛÙÈ΋˜ ·Ó¿Ù˘Í˘.
◊ÂÈÚÔ˜, ∞ÈÙˆÏԷηÚÓ·Ó›·, ªÔÚÈ¿˜ (13Ô˜–
16Ô˜ ·È.).” In Kiousopoulou 2012, 207–24.
Karayannopoulos 1986. I. Karayannopoulos.
L’inscription protobulgare de Direkler. Comité
national grec des études du Sud-Est
Européen, Centre d’ Études du Sud-Est
Européen, 19. Athens, 1986.
Karayannopoulos 1989. I. Karayannopoulos.
Les Slaves en Macédoine. La prétendue
interruption des communications entre
Constantinople et Thessalonique du 7ème au
9ème siècle. Comité national grec des
études du Sud-Est Européen, Centre d’
Études du Sud-Est européen, 25. Athens,
1989.
Karetsou et al. 2012. A. Karetsou, ª.
∞ndreadaki-Vlazaki, E. Grammatikaki, M.
Bredaki, and A. Kanta. “∫°’ ∂ÊÔÚ›·
¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ Î·È ∫Ï·ÛÈÎÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.”
πn Andreadaki-Vlazaki 2012, 311–16.
Karouzos 1973. Ch. Karouzos. ƒfi‰Ô˜: ÈÛÙÔÚ›·,
ÌÓËÌ›·, Ù¤¯ÓË. 2nd ed. ∞Ú¯·›ÔÈ ÙfiÔÈ Î·È
ÈÂÚ¿ Ù˘ ∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜, 4. Athens, 1973.
Karydas 1996. N. Karydas.
“¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈΤ˜ ÔÈ˘ Ì ÙÚÈÎÏ›ÓÈÔ ÛÙË
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË. ∞∂ª£ 10μ (1996): 571–85.
Karydas 2009. N. Karydas.
“¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈΤ˜ ÔÈ˘ Ì ÙÚÈÎÏ›ÓÈÔ ÛÙË
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË Ì¤ÚÔ˜ ππ: ‰¤Î· ¯ÚfiÓÈ· ÌÂÙ¿.”
∞∂ª£, EÂÙÂÈ·Îfi˜ ÙfiÌÔ˜, 127–41.
Thessalonike, 2009.
Kasdagli 2010. A.-M. Kasdagli. “¡ÔÌ›ÛÌ·Ù·
ÙˆÓ Ì¤ÛˆÓ ¯ÚfiÓˆÓ ÛÙËÓ ÂÎÙfi˜ ÙˆÓ
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎÒÓ ÙÂȯÒÓ fiÏË Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘.”
√‚ÔÏfi˜ 9 (2010): 159–73.
Kasdagli and Manousou-Della 2000. A.-M.
Kasdagli and K. Manousou-Della. “¡¤Â˜
¤Ú¢Ó˜ ÛÙËÓ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Ù˘ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜
‡Ï˘ ÙÔ˘ ∞Á›Ô˘ πˆ¿ÓÓË ÛÙËÓ fiÏË Ù˘
ƒfi‰Ô˘.” In Rhodes, 2400 years, vol. II, 327–
40. Athens, 2000.
Kassianos Bassos 1895. Geoponica sive
Cassiani Bassi scholastici De re rustica
eclogae, edited by H. Beckh. Bibliotheca
Scriptorum Graecorum et Romanorum
Teubneriana. Leipzig, 1895.
Katsaros 1989. V. Katsaros, “∞fi ÙËÓ
ηıËÌÂÚÈÓ‹ ˙ˆ‹ ÛÙÔ ¢ÂÛÔÙ¿ÙÔ Ù˘
H›ÚÔ˘, ∏ Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›· ÙÔ˘ ÌËÙÚÔÔÏ›ÙË
¡·˘¿ÎÙÔ˘ πˆ¿ÓÓË ∞fiη˘ÎÔ˘.” In
Angelidi 1989, 631–74.
Katsioti and Archontopoulos 2000. A.
Katsioti and Th. Archontopoulos. “ΔÔ
·ÚÂÎÎÏ‹ÛÈÔ Ù˘ ÔÈÎÔÁÂÓ›·˜ ÙˆÓ
∞ÚÌÂÓfiÔ˘ÏˆÓ ÛÙË ƒfi‰Ô Î·È Ë Ù¤¯ÓË ÙÔ˘
Ù¤ÏÔ˘˜ ÙÔ˘ 12Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ· ÛÙ· ¢ˆ‰ÂοÓËÛ·.”
In Rhodes, 2400 years, vol. II, 375–86.
Kautzsch 1936. R. Kautzsch. Kapitellstudien.
Beiträge zu einer Geschichte des spätantiken
Kapitells im Osten vom vierten bis ins siebte
Jahrhundert. Studien zur spätantiken
Kunstgeschichte, 9. Berlin and Leipzig,
1936.
Kavala and region. ∞’ ΔÔÈÎfi ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ: ∏
∫·‚¿Ï· Î·È Ë ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ Ù˘. ∫·‚¿Ï· 18–
20/4/1977. ÿ‰Ú˘Ì· ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ ÃÂÚÛÔÓ‹ÛÔ˘
ÙÔ˘ ∞›ÌÔ˘, 189. Thessalonike, 1980.
Kazanaki-Lappa 2000. M. Kazanaki-Lappa.
“∏ ∞ı‹Ó· ·fi ÙËÓ ‡ÛÙÂÚË ∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ· ˆ˜
ÙËÓ ÙÔ˘ÚÎÈ΋ ηٿÎÙËÛË.” In Aı‹Ó·È. Afi
ÙËÓ ∫Ï·ÛÛÈ΋ ∂Ô¯‹ ¤ˆ˜ ™‹ÌÂÚ· (5Ô˜ ·È. .Ã.–
2000 Ì.Ã.), edited by Ch. Bouras, M. B.
Sakellariou, K. P. Staikos, and E. Touloupa,
194–209. Athens, 2000.
Kazanaki-Lappa 2002. M. Kazanaki-Lappa.
“Medieval Athens,” In Laiou 2002, vol. 2,
639–46.
Kazhdan 1997. A. Kazhdan. “The Formation
of Byzantine Family Names in the Ninth and
Tenth Centuries.” BSl 58 (1997): 90–110.
Kazhdan and Constable 1982. A. Kazhdan
and G. Constable. People and power in
Byzantium. Washington, D.C., 1982.
Kazhdan and Nesbitt 1991. A. Kazhdan and
J. W. Nesbitt. “Olive.” ODB, vol. 3, 1522–23.
KChron. ∫ÚËÙÈο ÃÚÔÓÈο.
Kefallonitou 2001. F. Kefallonitou.
“¡ÂÒÙÂÚ· ÛÙÔȯ›· Î·È ·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÁÈ·
ÙËÓ ¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Ù˘
¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘.” In ªÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ ◊ÂÈÚÔ˜.
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈÎÔ‡ ™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘ (πˆ¿ÓÓÈÓ·,
17-19 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1999), 3–25. Ioannina,
2001.
Kefallonitou 2007. F. Kefallonitou. “∏
·Ó·Ûηʋ ÙˆÓ ·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÒÓ ÙÂȯÒÓ
Ù˘ ¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘.” In Zachos 2007, vol. 1,
299–305.
Kefallonitou and Gerolymou 2008.
F. Kefallonitou and C. Gerolymou. ∏
‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ÙÔ˘ ∂ÈÛÎfiÔ˘ ¢Ô˘ÌÂÙ›Ô˘ ÛÙËÓ
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË / The Basilica of
the Bishop Doumetios in Early Christian
Nicopolis. Athens, 2008.
Kefallonitou and Papadopoulou 1988.
F. Kefallonitou and μ. Papadopoulou.
“8Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.”
∞Delt 43 (1988): Chronika, 310–34.
Kekaumenos 1993. ™ÙÚ·ÙËÁÈÎfiÓ ∫Âη˘Ì¤ÓÔ˘,
edited by D. Tsougarakis. Athens, 1993.
Keramopoulos 1917. A. D. Keramopoulos.
“£Ë‚·˚ο.” ∞Delt 3 (1917): 1–503.
Keramopoulos 1926. A. Keramopoulos.
“¶·Ï·È·› ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈη› Î·È μ˘˙·ÓÙȷη› Δ·Ê·›
ÂÓ £‹‚·È˜.” ∞Delt 10 (1926): 124–36.
Khatchatrian 1962. A. Khatchatrian. Les
Baptistères paléochrétiens. Paris, 1962.
Kiousopoulou 1993. A. Kiousopoulou.
“Lieux de communication et ville byzantine
tardive: un essai de typologie.” BSl 54/2
(1993): 279–87.
Kiousopoulou 2003. T. Kiousopoulou. “∏
·ÚÔ˘Û›· ÙˆÓ ÌÔÓ·ÛÙËÚÈÒÓ Ì¤Û· ÛÙȘ
fiÏÂȘ ηٿ ÙÔ˘ ·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁÂÈÔ˘˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜.”
In Money and Market in the Palaiologan Era,
edited by N. Moschonas, 273–82. Athens,
2003.
Kiousopoulou 2006. T. Kiousopoulou. “√È
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ ÛÔ˘‰¤˜ ÛÙËÓ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·.” In
Athens 2006, 25–36.
Kiousopoulou 2012. √È ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ fiÏÂȘ 8Ô˜–
15Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜. ¶ÚÔÔÙÈΤ˜ Ù˘ ¤Ú¢ӷ˜ Î·È Ó¤Â˜
ÂÚÌËÓ¢ÙÈΤ˜ ÚÔÛÂÁÁ›ÛÂȘ, edited by T.
Kiousopoulou. Rethymnon, 2012.
Kiousopoulou 2012a. T. Kiousopoulou.
“∞ÛÙÔ› Î·È ·ÁÚÔ›ÎÔÈ Î·Ù¿ ÙËÓ ‡ÛÙÂÚË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÔ¯‹.” In Kiousopoulou 2012, 253–61.
Kirsten 1958. E. Kirsten. “Die byzantinische
Stadt.” In Berichte zum XI. Internationalen
Byzantinisten Kongress, 1–48. Munich, 1958.
Kirsten 1987. E. Kirsten. “The Origins of the
First Inhabitants of Nikopolis.” In Chrysos
1987, 91–98.
Kislinger 2001. E. Kislinger.
Regionalgeschichte als Quellenproblem: Die
Chronik von Monembasia und das
sizilianische Demenna. Eine historischtopographische Studie. Österr. Ak. der Wiss.
Philos.-hist. Klasse, Denkschr., 294. Veröff.
der Kommission für die TIB, 8. Vienna
2001.
Kissas 1974. S. Kissas. “Solunska umetnijčka
porodiša Astrapa.” Zograf 5 (1974), 35–37.
Kissas 1980. S. Kissas. “Les monuments
serbes médiévaux à Thessalonique.” Zograf
11 (1980): 29–43.
Kissas 1987. S. Kissas. “Umetnost u Solunu
pojčetkom XIII veka i Mileševsko
slikarstvo.” In Miles
̌ eva dans l’histoire du
peuple Serbe. Colloque scientifique
international à l’occasion de 750 ans de son
existence, Juin 1985, edited by V. J. Djuric’,
37–49. Academie serbe des sciences et des
arts. Colloques scientifiques, XXXVIII.
Classe des sciences historiques, 6.
Belgrade, 1987.
Kissas 1996. S. Kissas. “A Sepulchral
monument in Hagia Sophia, Thessaloniki.”
Museum of Byzantine Culture 3 (1996): 36–40.
Kitzinger 1951. E. Kitzinger. “Studies on
Late Antiquity and Early Byzantine Floor
Mosaics, 1. Mosaics of Nicopolis.” DOP 6
(1951): 79–122.
Kleinbower 1999. W. E. Kleinbower.
“Architecture.” In Boersock, Brown, and
Grabar 1999, 311–14.
Koder 1973. J. Koder. Negroponte,
Untersuchungen zur Topographie und
Siedlungsgeschichte der Insel Euboia während
der Zeit der Venezianerherrschaft. Österr. Ak.
der Wiss. Philos.-hist. Klasse. Denkschr.,
112. Veröff. der Kommission für die TIB, 1.
Vienna, 1973.
Koder 2003. J. Koder. “Griechische
Identitäten im Mittelalter. Aspekte einer
Entwicklung.” In μ˘˙¿ÓÙÈÔ, ÎÚ¿ÙÔ˜ ηÈ
ÎÔÈÓˆÓ›·. ªÓ‹ÌË ¡›ÎÔ˘ √ÈÎÔÓÔÌ›‰Ë, edited
by A. Avramea, A. Laiou, and E. Chrysos,
297–319. Athens, 2003.
Koder 2005. J. Koder. To μ˘˙¿ÓÙÈÔ ˆ˜ ¯ÒÚÔ˜.
∂ÈÛ·ÁˆÁ‹ ÛÙËÓ πÛÙÔÚÈ΋ °ÂˆÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘
∞Ó·ÙÔÏÈ΋˜ ªÂÛÔÁ›Ԣ ÛÙË μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ∂Ô¯‹.
Δranslated by D. Ch. Stathakopoulos.
Thessalonike, 2005.
Koder and Hild 1976. J. Koder and F. Hild.
Hellas und Thessalia. Österr. Ak. der Wiss.
Philos.-hist. Klasse. Denkschr., 125. TIB, 1.
Vienna, 1976.
Koester 2007. H. Koester. Paul and his World:
Interpreting the New Testament in its Context.
Minneapolis, 2007.
Koester 2010. H. Koester. “Egyptian Religion
in Thessalonikē.” In Nasrallah et al. 2010,
131–50.
Koilakou 1997. Ch. Koilakou. “1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 52 (1997):
Chronika μ1, 109–28.
Koilakou 1998. Ch. Koilakou. “1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 53 (1998):
Chronika μ1, 93–108.
Koilakou 1999. Ch. Koilakou. “ 1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 54 (1999):
Chronika μ1, 118–36.
Koilakou 2000a. Ch. Koilakou. “1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 55 (2000):
Chronika μ1, 143–61.
Koilakou 2000b. Ch. Koilakou. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
Î·È ÌÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÛÙË £‹‚·.”
In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο °’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ
ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ. £‹‚·, 4–8 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1996 =
∂∂μª 3/1 (2000): 1009–39.
Koilakou 2002. Ch. Koilakou. “μÈÔÙ¯ÓÈΤ˜
ÂÁηٷÛÙ¿ÛÂȘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ÂÔ¯‹˜ ÛÙË
£‹‚·.” ∂ÈÎÔÛÙfi ¢Â‡ÙÂÚÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜
Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 17, 18 Î·È 19 ª·˝Ô˘ 2002.
¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ ηÈ
·Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 46–47. ∞thens, 2002.
Koilakou 2004. Ch. Koilakou. “μÈÔÙ¯ÓÈΤ˜
ÂÁηٷÛÙ¿ÛÂȘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ÂÔ¯‹˜ ÛÙË
£‹‚·.” In ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ΔÂÎÌ‹ÚÈ·
μÈÔÙ¯ÓÈÎÒÓ ∂ÁηٷÛÙ¿ÛÂˆÓ Î·Ù¿ ÙË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÔ¯‹, 5Ô˜–15Ô˜ ·È. ∂ȉÈÎfi ı¤Ì· ÙÔ˘ 22Ô˘
™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 17–19 ª·˝Ô˘
2002, 221–41. Athens, 2004.
Koilakou 2008. Ch. Koilakou. “√ Ó·fi˜ ÙÔ˘
∞Á›Ô˘ °ÚËÁÔÚ›Ô˘ £ÂÔÏfiÁÔ˘ ÛÙË £‹‚·.
¡ÂÒÙÂÚ· ÛÙÔȯ›·.” In ∂ÈÎÔÛÙfi ŸÁ‰ÔÔ
™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 16, 17 Î·È 18
ª·˝Ô˘ 2008. ¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ
∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È ∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 51. Athens,
2008.
Koilakou 2011. Ch. Koilakou. “∏ £‹‚·
ÛÙÔ˘˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜ Ù˘ ÌÂÙ¿‚·Û˘ (6Ô˜ –9Ô˜
·È.).” In ΔÚÈ·ÎÔÛÙfi ¶ÚÒÙÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜
Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 13, 14 Î·È 15 ª·˝Ô˘ 2011.
¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ ∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 42–43. Athens, 2011.
Koilakou 2012. Ch. Koilakou. “∫ÂÚ·ÌÈ΋ ÌÂ
Ï¢Îfi ËÏfi ·fi ·Ó·Ûηʤ˜ ÛÙË £‹‚·.”
DChAE 33 (2012): 305–12.
Koilakou and Galani-Krikou 1993. Ch.
Koilakou and M. Galani-Krikou. “ 1Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ (¡.
∞ÙÙÈ΋˜, ™¤ÙÛ˜, ¡. μÔȈٛ·˜).” ∞Delt 48
(1993): Chronika μ1, 75–93.
Koilakou and Galani-Krikou 1996. Ch.
Koilakou, M. Galani-Krikou. “1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 51 (1996):
Chronika μ1, 71–86.
Koilakou et al 1992. Ch. Koilakou, E.
Chalkia, and M. Krikou-Galani. “1Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ (¡.
∞ÙÙÈ΋˜, ¡. μÔȈٛ·˜, ⁄‰Ú·, ™¤ÙÛ˜).”
∞Delt 47 (1992); Chronika μ1, 62–84.
Koilakou et al. 1994. Ch. Koilakou, Ai.
Pantelidou-Alexiadou, E. KounoupiotouManolessou, E. Ghini-Tsofopoulou, A.
Kourenta-Raptaki, and M. Galani-Krikou.
“1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ
(™¤ÙÛ˜, ¡. ∞ÙÙÈ΋˜, ¡. ∂‡‚ÔÈ·˜, ¡.
μÔȈٛ·˜, ∫‡ıËÚ·, ∞›ÁÈÓ·).” ADelt 49
(1994): Chronika μ1, 85–127.
Koilakou et al. 1995. Ch. Koilakou, E. GhiniTsofopoulou, and M. Galani-Krikou. “1Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ (™¤ÙÛ˜,
¡. ∞ÙÙÈ΋˜, ∫‡ıËÚ·, ¡. μÔȈٛ·˜).” ∞Delt 50
(1995): Chronika μ1, 69–90.
Kokkou 2009. A. Kokkou. ∏ ̤ÚÈÌÓ· ÁÈ· ÙȘ
·Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ˜ ÛÙËÓ ∂ÏÏ¿‰· Î·È Ù· ÚÒÙ·
ÌÔ˘Û›·. 2nd ed. Athens, 2009.
Kolias 1939. G. Kolias. Léon Choerosphaktès,
Magistre, Proconsul et Patrice. Texte und
Forschungen zur byzantinischneugriechischen Philologie, 31. Athens,
1939.
Kollias 1980. π. ∫ollias. “Δ· ¢ˆ‰ÂοÓËÛ·
(1204–1522).” In π∂E. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi˜ ÂÏÏËÓÈÛÌfi˜.
ªÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ› Î·È ˘ÛÙÂÚÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ› ¯ÚfiÓÔÈ
(1204–1453), vol. 9, 291–301. Athens,
1980.
Kollias 1992. ∂. Kollias. “ΔÔÔÁÚ·ÊÈο
ÚÔ‚Ï‹Ì·Ù· Ù˘ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜ ·ÁÔÚ¿˜ Ù˘
ƒfi‰Ô˘ Î·È ÙÔ˘ ÓfiÙÈÔ˘ Ù›¯Ô˘˜ ÙÔ˘
∫ÔÏÏ¿ÎÈÔ˘.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋˜
™˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛ˘, πÛÙÔÚ›· Î·È ÚÔ‚Ï‹Ì·Ù·
Û˘ÓÙ‹ÚËÛ˘ Ù˘ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜ fiÏ˘ Ù˘
ƒfi‰Ô˘, 81–108. Athens, 1992.
Kollias 1994. I. Kollias. ∏ ªÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ fiÏË Ù˘
ƒfi‰Ô˘ Î·È ÙÔ ¶·Ï¿ÙÈ ÙÔ˘ ªÂÁ¿ÏÔ˘ ª·Á›ÛÙÚÔ˘.
Athens, 1994.
Kollias 2000. I. Kollias. “∏ ·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋
Î·È ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ƒfi‰Ô˜. ∏ ·ÓÙ›ÛÙ·ÛË ÌÈ·˜
ÂÏÏËÓÈÛÙÈ΋˜ fiÏ˘.” In Rhodes, 2400 years,
vol. II, 299–308.
Kollias 2004. ∂. Kollias. ∏ ƒfi‰Ô˜ ·fi ÙÔÓ 4Ô
·ÈÒÓ· Ì.Ã. ̤¯ÚÈ ÙËÓ Î·Ù¿ÏË„‹ Ù˘ ·fi ÙÔ˘˜
ΔÔ‡ÚÎÔ˘˜ (1522), ¶·Ï¿ÙÈ ªÂÁ¿ÏÔ˘ ª·Á›ÛÙÚÔ˘.
Athens, 2004.
Kollias 2007. ∂. Kollias. “∞Ó·˙ËÙÒÓÙ·˜ Ù·
¯·Ì¤Ó· ÌÓËÌ›· Ù˘ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜ fiÏ˘
Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘.” In City of Rhodes 2007, vol. I,
283–96.
Kolonas et al 1987. L. Kolonas, M. Kotsaki,
M. Stauropoulou-Gatsi, L. Papacosta, M.
Petritaki, G. Alexopoulou, and M. Lakaki.
“™Ù’ ∂ÊÔÚ›· ¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ Î·È ∫Ï·ÛÛÈÎÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 42 (1987): Chronika
B1, 137–84.
Kondylis 2010. Th. Kondylis. “∏ ∞ÚÁÔÏ›‰·
ÙËÓ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô 1350–1400. ΔÔ Ù¤ÏÔ˜ Ù˘
ÊÚ·ÁÎÔÎÚ·Ù›·˜ Î·È Ë ·Ú¯‹ Ù˘
‚ÂÓÂÙÔÎÚ·Ù›·˜.” In Maltezou and
Panopoulou 2010, 19–38.
Konidaris 1935. G. Konidaris. “¶fiÙÂ
ÚÔ‹¯ıËÛ·Ó ·È ∞ı‹Ó·È ÂȘ ÌËÙÚfiÔÏÈÓ.”
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο Ù˘ ∞η‰ËÌ›·˜ ∞ıËÓÒÓ 10 (1935):
285–292.
Konidaris 1953. G. Konidaris. “∞È
ÂÈÛÎÔ·› Ù˘ ∫Ú‹Ù˘ ̤¯ÚÈ ÙÔ˘ π’ ·ÈÒÓÔ˜.”
KChron 7 (1953): 462–78.
Konidaris 1956. G. Konidaris. “¶fiÙÂ
·Ú‹ÎÌ·ÛÂ Î·È ÂͤÏÂÈÂ Î·È ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÒ˜ Ë
¡ÈÎfiÔÏȘ Î·È ·Ó‰›¯ıË Ë ¡·‡·ÎÙÔ˜.” In
¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ £’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË, 12–19 ∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘
1953, edited by S. Kyriakidis, A.
Xyngopoulos, and P. Zepos, vol. II, 151–205.
∂ÏÏËÓÈο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 9. Athens, 1956.
Konstantinides 1968. E. Konstantinides.
™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÂȘ ÙËÓ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈÎ‹Ó ÈÛÙÔÚ›·Ó Ù˘
¢ˆ‰ÂηӋÛÔ˘. Athens, 1968.
Konstantinopoulos 1986. G.
Konstantinopoulos. ∞Ú¯·›· ƒfi‰Ô˜.
∂ÈÛÎfiËÛË Ù˘ ÈÛÙÔÚ›·˜ Î·È Ù˘ Ù¤¯Ó˘.
Athens, 1986.
Konstantios 1981. D. Konstantios. “¡¤·
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ÛÙË ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË
Ù˘ ∏›ÚÔ˘.” ∏ÂÈÚˆÙÈο ÃÚÔÓÈο 23
(1981): 346–49.
Konstantios 2000. D. Konstantios. ΔÔ ∫¿ÛÙÚÔ
ÙˆÓ πˆ·ÓÓ›ÓˆÓ. 2nd ed. Athens, 2000.
Konstantios 2004a. D. Konstantios.
“μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi Î·È ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfi ªÔ˘Û›Ô.
ªÂÙ·ÌÔÚÊÒÛÂȘ.” In Kakouris et al. 2004,
29–46.
Konstantios 2004b. D. Konstantios.
“μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi Î·È ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfi ªÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô – ∞fi
ÙÔÓ 19Ô ÛÙÔÓ 21Ô ·ÈÒÓ·.” In √ ÎfiÛÌÔ˜ ÙÔ˘
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ªÔ˘Û›Ԣ, 9–25. Athens, 2004.
Konstantios 2006. D. Konstantios.
“°ÂÒÚÁÈÔ˜ ™ˆÙËÚ›Ô˘: À¤Ú ŒıÓÔ˘˜,
£ÚËÛΛ·˜ Î·È ∂ÈÛÙ‹Ì˘.” In Athens 2006,
64–76.
Konstantios 2009–10. D. Konstantios. “ΔÔ
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ªÔ˘ÛÂ›Ô Á˘Ú›˙ÂÈ ÛÂÏ›‰·.” πlissia
5–6 (2009–10): 4–11.
Konstantios and Chalkia 1987. D. Konstantios
and E. Chalkia. “¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈο ÁÏ˘Ù¿
¡ÈÎÔfiψ˜.” In Chrysos 1987, 317–25.
Konti 1983. V. Konti. “™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙËÓ
ÈÛÙÔÚÈ΋ ÁˆÁÚ·Ê›· ÙÔ˘ ÓÔÌÔ‡
∞ÚÁÔÏ›‰·˜.” ™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 5 (1983): 169–202.
Konti 2000. V. Konti. “∏ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ˜.” In √È ªÂÙ·ÌÔÚÊÒÛÂȘ Ù˘
¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓ‹ÛÔ˘ (4Ô˜–15Ô˜ ·È.), edited by E.
Grammatikopoulou, 35–58. Athens, 2000.
Konti 2002. V. Konti. “ΔÔ ¡·‡ÏÈÔ Î·È ÔÈ
Û¯¤ÛÂȘ ÙÔ˘ Ì ÙËÓ ÂÈÛÎÔ‹ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ ηٿ
ÙË Ì¤ÛË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” ™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 15
(2002): 131–48.
Kontis 1954. I. Kontis. ™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹Ó ÂȘ ÙËÓ
ÌÂϤÙËÓ Ù˘ Ú˘ÌÔÙÔÌ›·˜ Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘. Rhodes,
1954.
Kordosis 1981. M. Kordosis. ™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙËÓ
ÈÛÙÔÚ›· Î·È ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘ ÂÚÈÔ¯‹˜ ∫ÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘
ÛÙÔ˘˜ ̤ÛÔ˘˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜. μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË
πÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ, 159. Athens, 1981.
Kordosis 1982–83. M. Kordosis. “ΔÔ ÂÌfiÚÈÔ
ÛÙË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ §·ÎˆÓ›· (£’ ·È.–1204).” In
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘ ∞’ ΔÔÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ
§·ÎˆÓÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ. ªÔÏ¿ÔÈ, 5–7 πÔ˘Ó›Ô˘
1982, 107–12. ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο.
¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 9. Athens, 1982–83.
Kordosis 1985–86. M. Kordosis. “∏
ηٿÎÙËÛË Ù˘ ¡fiÙÈ·˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·˜ ·fi ÙÔ˘˜
ºÚ¿ÁÎÔ˘˜.” πÛÙÔÚÈÎÔÁˆÁÚ·ÊÈο 1 (1985–
86): 53–209.
Kordosis 2010. M. Kordosis. “∏ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋
∫fiÚÈÓıÔ˜: ·fi ÙËÓ ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ fiÏË
ÛÙÔ Î¿ÛÙÚÔ ÙˆÓ ‡ÛÙÂÚˆÓ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
¯ÚfiÓˆÓ.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘ ∏’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛÈ·ÎÒÓ ™Ô˘‰ÒÓ.
∫fiÚÈÓıÔ˜, 26–28 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2008, 155–66.
¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 29. Athens,
2010.
Korres 1990. M. Korres. Die Explosion des
Parthenon. Berlin, 1990.
Korres 1993. M. Korres. “¶ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈΤ˜
·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙË ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ ∞ı‹Ó·.” In
¢¤Î·ÙÔ ΔÚ›ÙÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ηÈ
ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘.
∞ı‹Ó· 23, 24 Î·È 25 ∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘ 1993.
¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏË„ÂȘ ∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 20–21. ∞thens, 1993.
Korres 1994. M. Korres. “The Architecture of
the Parthenon.” In The Parthenon and its
Impact in Modern Times, edited by P.
Tournikiotis, 54–97. Athens, 1994.
Kossyva 2011. A. Kossyva. “ªÂ۷ȈÓÈÎfi
ÕÚÁÔ˜: Ë Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›· ‰‡Ô ÓÔÌÈÛÌ·ÙÈÎÒÓ
‘ıËÛ·˘ÚÒÓ.’” In ΔÔ ÓfiÌÈÛÌ· ÛÙËÓ
¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ. ¡ÔÌÈÛÌ·ÙÔÎÔ›·, ÂÈÎÔÓÔÁÚ·Ê›·,
΢ÎÏÔÊÔÚ›·, ÔÈÎÔÓÔÌÈ΋ ÈÛÙÔÚ›· ·fi ÙËÓ
·Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ· ¤ˆ˜ Î·È ÙË ÓÂfiÙÂÚË ÂÔ¯‹. ™Ù’
∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋ ™˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛË. ÕÚÁÔ˜, 26–29 ª·˝Ô˘
2011. ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ, 38. Argos, 2011.
Koukouli-Chrysanthaki 1980. Ch. Koukouli-
| 283 |
Chrysanthaki. “√È ·ÔÈ˘ Ù˘ £¿ÛÔ˘ ÛÙÔ
μ. ∞ÈÁ·›Ô. ¡ÂÒÙÂÚ· Â˘Ú‹Ì·Ù·.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
∞’ ΔÔÈÎÔ‡ ™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘, ∏ ∫·‚¿Ï· Î·È Ë
ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ Ù˘. ∫·‚¿Ï·, 18–20/4/1977, 309–25.
ÿ‰Ú˘Ì· ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ ÃÂÚÛÔÓ‹ÛÔ˘ ÙÔ˘ ∞›ÌÔ˘,
189. Thessalonike, 1980.
Koukouli-Chrysanthaki 1998. Ch. KoukouliChrysanthaki. “Colonia Julia Augusta
Philippensis.” In Philippi at the time of Paul
and After His Death, edited by Ch. Bakirtzis
and H. Koester, 5–35. Harrisburg, Pa.,
1998.
Koukouli-Chrysanthaki 2009. Ch. KoukouliChrysanthaki. “∞fiÏÏˆÓ ∫ˆÌ·›Ô˜ ÛÙÔ˘˜
ºÈÏ›Ô˘˜.” In ∫ÂÚÌ¿ÙÈ· ÊÈÏ›·˜. ΔÈÌËÙÈÎfi˜
ÙfiÌÔ˜ ÁÈ· ÙÔÓ πˆ¿ÓÓË ΔÔ˘Ú¿ÙÛÔÁÏÔ˘, vol. ππ,
481–503. Athens, 2009.
Koukouli-Crysanthaki et al. 1996. Ch.
Koukouli-Crysanthaki, R. Treuil, and D.
Kalamidou. “¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎfi˜ ÔÈÎÈÛÌfi˜
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ ‘¡ÙÈÎÈÏ› Δ¿˜’–¢¤Î· ¯ÚfiÓÈ·
·Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋˜ ¤Ú¢ӷ˜.” ∞∂ª£ 10 (1996) μ’:
681–704.
Koumanoudi 2010. M. Koumanoudi. “∏
ηٿÛÙ·ÛË ÙÔ˘ ·ÁÚÔÙÈÎÔ‡ ÏËı˘ÛÌÔ‡ ÙÔ˘
ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ ÛÙ· Ù¤ÏË ÙÔ˘ 14Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ·.” In
Maltezou and Panopoulou 2010, 121–33.
Kountoura-Galake 1996. E. KountouraGalake. “H ‘ÂÈÎÔÓÔÎÏ·ÛÙÈ΋’ notitia 3 ηÈ
ÙÔ Ï·ÙÈÓÈÎfi ÚfiÙ˘fi Ù˘.” ™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 10
(1996): 45–73.
Kountoura-Galake 2004. E. KountouraGalake. “Iconoclast Officials and the
Formation of Surnames during the Reign
of Constantine V.” REB 62 (2004): 247–53.
Kourelis 2007. K. Kourelis. “Byzantium and
the Avant-Garde. Excavations at Corinth
1920s–1930s.” Hesperia 76 (2007): 397–442.
Kourinou 2000. E. Kourinou. ™¿ÚÙË.
™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙË ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘.
Horos. ∏ ªÂÁ¿ÏË μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË, 3. Athens,
2000.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 1983. E.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “√È ‰‡Ô
¿Ì‚ˆÓ˜ Ù˘ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜ ÙÔ˘ ªÔ˘Û›Ԣ
ÛÙÔ˘˜ ºÈÏ›Ô˘˜.” In ∞ÊȤڈ̷ ÛÙË ÌÓ‹ÌË
™Ù˘ÏÈ·ÓÔ‡ ¶ÂÏÂηӛ‰Ë, 197–212.
ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 5. Thessalonike,
1983.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 1984.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “Les ambons
paléochrétiens à Thessalonique et à
Philippes (Résumé).” CorsRav 31 (1984):
255–75.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 1989.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “∏ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋
ÙÔ˘ ªÔ˘Û›Ԣ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ. Δ· ‚fiÚÂÈ·
ÚÔÛÎÙ›ÛÌ·Ù·.” ∞∂ª£ 3 (1989): 465–73.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 1991.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “∏ ı¤ÛË ÙÔ˘
‰È·ÎÔÓÈÎÔ‡ ÛÙË ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ÙÔ˘ ªÔ˘Û›Ԣ
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” ∞∂ª£ 5 (1991): 399–467.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 1995.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “º›ÏÈÔÈ.
∞fi ÙËÓ ·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ÛÙË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
fiÏË.” In ¢ÈÂıÓ¤˜ Û˘ÌfiÛÈÔ, μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·, 324–1430 Ì. Ã. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË,
29–31/10/1992, 171–82. ª·Î‰ÔÓÈ΋
‚È‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË, ·Ú. 82. Thessalonike, 1995.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 1997a.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “From the
Elysian Fields to the Christian Paradise.” In
The Transformation of the Roman World A.D.
400–900, edited by L. Webster and M.
Brown, 128–32. London, 1997.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 1997b.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “ΔÔ
∂ÈÛÎÔÂ›Ô ÙˆÓ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ ÛÙÔÓ 6o ·ÈÒÓ·.”
In ªÓ‹ÌË ª·ÓfiÏË ∞Ó‰ÚfiÓÈÎÔ˘, 115–25.
ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 6. Thessalonike,
1997.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 2000.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “√È
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÔ› ¿Ì‚ˆÓ˜ Ù˘
| 284 |
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο π°’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ – ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË (21–23/10/1999), 203–20.
Thessalonike, 2000.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 2004.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. “ΔÔ ªÔ˘Û›Ô
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌÔ‡. √Ú¿Ì·Ù· ηÈ
ÌÔ˘ÛÂȷ΋ Ú·ÎÙÈ΋.” In Kakouris et al.
2004, 47–52.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 2008.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou. The Church of
Christ the Saviour, Thessaloniki. Athens, 2008.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou and Marki 1995.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou and E. Marki.
“Des innoviations liturgiques et
architecturales dans la basilique du musée
de Philippes.” In Akten des XII.
πnternationalen ∫ongresses für christliche
Archäologie. Bonn, 22–28/9/1991, vol. II,
950–57. Jahrbuch für Antike und
Christentum. Ergänzungsband, 20. 2.
Münster and Vatican City, 1995.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou and Tourta 1997.
E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou and A. Tourta.
Wandering in Byzantine Thessaloniki. Athens,
1997.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou, MavropoulouTsioumi, and Bakirtzis 2012. E.
Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou, Ch.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi, and Ch. Bakirtzis.
Mosaics of Thessaloniki, 4th–14th century.
Athens, 2012.
Krautheimer 1986. R. Krautheimer. Early
Christian and Byzantine Architecture. 4th ed.
Auckland, 1986.
Krautheimer 1991. R. Krautheimer.
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ηi ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋.
Translated by F. Mallouchou-Tufano.
Athens, 1991.
Kravari 1989. V. Kravari. Villes et villages de
Macédoine occidentale. Réalités byzantines,
2. Paris, 1989.
Kreidl-Papadopoulos 1966. K. KreidlPapadopoulos. Die Wandmalereien des XI.
Jahrhunderts in der Kirche ¶·Ó·Á›·
ÙˆÓ Ã·ÏΤˆÓ in Thessaloniki. Byzantina
Vindobonensia, 2. Graz and Cologne,
1966.
Kriesis 1965. A. Kriesis. Greek Town Building.
Athens, 1965.
Krokos 1998. K. Krokos. “On the plans for
the Museum of Byzantine Culture.” In A
Gaze into Matter, edited by Y. Simeoforidis,
16–18. Thessalonike, 1998.
Kyriakopoulos 1976. K. T. Kyriakopoulos.
∞Á›Ô˘ ¶¤ÙÚÔ˘ ÂÈÛÎfiÔ˘ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ μ›Ô˜ ηÈ
§fiÁÔÈ. Athens, 1976.
Kyriakoudis 1997. E. N. Kyriakoudis. “The
Morava School and the Art of Thessaloniki
in the Light of New Data and
Observations.” Zograf 26 (1997): 95–105.
Kyritses 2012. D. Kyritses. “Revolts in late
Byzantine cities. Is reappraisal possible?” In
Kiousopoulou 2012, 263–76.
Kyrkou 2006. T. Kyrkou. H ¤·˘ÏË ÙÔ˘
ª¿ÓÈÔ˘ ∞ÓÙˆÓ›ÓÔ˘. ªÈ· ÔÏ˘ÙÂÏ‹˜ ȉȈÙÈ΋
ηÙÔÈΛ· ÛÙË ÚˆÌ·˚΋ ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË /The villa of
Manius Antoninus. A private luxury residence
at Roman Nicopolis. ªÓËÌ›· ¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘, 2.
Athens, 2006.
Kyrou 2001–2002. A. ∫. Kyrou, “¡ËÛȈÙÈο
ηٷʇÁÈ· ÛÙÔÓ ∞ÚÁÔÏÈÎfi ÎfiÏÔ Î·Ù¿ ÙÔ˘˜
ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡˜ ·ÈÒÓ˜.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ÙÔ˘
™Ù’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛÈ·ÎÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ. ΔÚ›ÔÏȘ, 24–29 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2000,
vol. II, 501–20. ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο.
¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 24. Athens, 2001–2002.
Lafontaine-Dosogne 1964. J. LafontaineDosogne. Iconographie de l’Enfance de la
Vierge dans l’Empire byzantin et en Occident.
Académie royale de Belgique. Classe des
beaux-arts. Mémoires. Collection in–4, 2,
sér., t. 11, fasc. 3–3b. μrussels, 1964.
Laiou 2002. The Economic History of
Byzantium: From the Seventh through the
Fifteenth Century, edited by A. E. Laiou. 3
vols. Dumbarton Oaks Studies, 39.
Washington, D.C., 2002.
Laiou 2002a. A. E. Laiou. “The Agrarian
Economy, Thirteenth–Fifteenth Centuries.”
In Laiou 2002, vol. 1, 311–75.
Laiou 2002b. A. E. Laiou. “Exchange and
Trade, Seventh–Twelfth Centuries.” In
Laiou 2002, vol. 2, 697–770.
Lambropoulos 1988. K. Lambropoulos.
πˆ¿ÓÓ˘ ∞fiη˘ÎÔ˜. πÛÙÔÚÈΤ˜ ªÔÓÔÁڷʛ˜,
6 Athens, 1988.
Lambros 1878. S. Lambros. ∞È ∞ı‹Ó·È ÂÚ› Ù·
Ù¤ÏË ÙÔ˘ 12Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓÔ˜ ηٿ ËÁ¿˜ ·ÓÂΉfiÙÔ˘˜.
Athens, 1878.
Lambros 1882. S. Lambros. ∫ÂÚ΢ڷ˚ο
·Ó¤Î‰ÔÙ·. Athens, 1882.
Lambros 1905. S. Lambros. “EÍ·Ì›ÏÈÔÓ.” ¡∂
2 (1905): 435–89.
Lambros 1911. S. Lambros. “√ ª·ÚÎÈ·Ófi˜
∫Ò‰ÈÍ 524.” ¡∂ 8 (1911): 3-59.
Lambros 1912. S. Lambros. ¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁÂÈ· η›
¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο, vol. I. Athens, 1912.
Lambrynidis 2001. M. G. Lambrynidis. ∏
¡·˘Ï›· ·fi ÙˆÓ ·Ú¯·ÈÔÙ¿ÙˆÓ ¯ÚfiÓˆÓ Ì¤¯ÚÈ
ÙˆÓ Î·ı’ ËÌ¿˜ [1898]. 4th ed. Nauplion,
2001.
Lampropoulou and Moutzali 2005.
A. Lampropoulou and A. Moutzali.
“H fiÏË ÙˆÓ ¶·ÙÚÒÓ Î·Ù¿ ÙËÓ
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ Î·È ÙËÓ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” In ¶¿ÙÚ· ·fi ÙËÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ·
¤ˆ˜ Û‹ÌÂÚ·, edited by Δ. ∂. Sklavenitis and
∫. S. Staikos, 59–99. Athens, 2005.
Lampropoulou et al. 2001. A. Lampropoulou,
I. Anagnostakis, V. Konti, and A.
Panopoulou. “™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙËÓ ÂÚÌËÓ›· ÙˆÓ
·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎÒÓ ÙÂÎÌËÚ›ˆÓ Ù˘
¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓ‹ÛÔ˘ ηٿ ÙÔ˘˜ ‘™ÎÔÙÂÈÓÔ‡˜
∞ÈÒÓ˜.’” In √È ™ÎÔÙÂÈÓÔ› ∞ÈÒÓ˜ ÙÔ˘
μ˘˙·ÓÙ›Ô˘ (7Ô˜–9Ô˜ ·È.), edited by E.
Kountoura-Galake, 189–229. ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú.
∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. ¢ÈÂıÓ‹
™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 9. Athens, 2001.
Lampropoulou et al. 2004. A.
Lampropoulou, I. Anagnostakis, V. Konti,
and A. Panopoulou. “ªÓ‹ÌË Î·È Ï‹ıË Ù˘
Ï·ÙÚ›·˜ ÙˆÓ ·Á›ˆÓ Ù˘ ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓ‹ÛÔ˘
(9Ô˜–15Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜).” In The Heroes of the
Orthodox Church. The New Saints, 8th–16th
c., edited by E. Kountoura-Galake, 265–94.
∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. ¢ÈÂıÓ‹
™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 15. Athens, 2004.
Lampsidis 1982. √. Lampsidis. √ ÂÎ ¶fiÓÙÔ˘
ŸÛÈÔ˜ ¡›ÎˆÓ Ô ªÂÙ·ÓÔ›ÙÂ. ∂ÈÙÚÔ‹
¶ÔÓÙÈ·ÎÒÓ MÂÏÂÙÒÓ ¶ÂÚÈÔ‰ÈÎÔ‡ «∞گ›ÔÓ
¶fiÓÙÔ˘». ¶·Ú. 13. ¶ËÁ·› Ù˘ πÛÙÔÚ›·˜ ÙˆÓ
∂ÏÏ‹ÓˆÓ ÙÔ˘ ¶fiÓÙÔ˘, 4. ∞thens, 1982.
Laniado 2009. A. Laniado. “ÕÁÈÔ˜ ¶¤ÙÚÔ˜
›ÛÎÔÔ˜ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜, Ô ÂÈÙ¿ÊÈfi˜ ÙÔ˘ ∂Ș ÙÔÓ
∞ı·Ó¿ÛÈÔÓ Â›ÛÎÔÔÓ ªÂıÒÓ˘ Î·È Ë
∂ÏÏËÓÈÎÒÓ £Âڷ¢ÙÈ΋ ¶·ıËÌ¿ÙˆÓ ÙÔ˘
£ÂÔ‰ÒÚËÙÔ˘ ∫‡ÚÚÔ˘.” In ªÓ‹ÌË Δ·ÛԇϷ˜
√ÈÎÔÓfiÌÔ˘ (1998–2008), edited by I. D.
Varalis and G. A. Pikoulas, 129–38. Volos,
2009.
Laourdas 1951. B. Laourdas. “O ¿ÁÈÔ˜
∞Ó‰Ú¤·˜ Ô ÂÓ ÙË ∫Ú›ÛÂÈ Î·È Ë ∫Ú‹ÙË Â›
ÂÈÎÔÓÔÌ·¯›·˜.” ∫Chron 5 (1951): 32–60.
Laourdas 1953–55. V. Laourdas. “√
‘™˘Ì‚Ô˘Ï¢ÙÈÎfi˜ ÚÔ˜ ÙÔ˘˜ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓÈΛ˜’
ÙÔ˘ ª·ÓÔ˘‹Ï ¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁÔ˘.” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 3
(1953–55): 290–307.
Laskaris 2000. N. Laskaris. Monuments
funéraires paléochrétiens (et byzantins) de
Grèce. Athens, 2000.
Laurent 1966. V. Laurent. “NÈÎÔfiψ˜ ηÈ
¶Ú‚¤˙˘ ªËÙÚfiÔÏȘ.” £ÚËÛ΢ÙÈ΋ ηÈ
∏ıÈ΋ ∂Á΢ÎÏÔ·›‰ÂÈ· 9 (1966): 543–45.
Lauxtermann 1998a. M. D. Lauxtermann.
“John Geometres – Poet and Scholar.”
Byzantion 68 (1998): 356–80.
Lauxtermann 1998b. M. D. Lauxtermann.
“Three Biographical Notes.” BZ 91 (1998):
391–405.
Lauxtermann 2003. M. D. Lauxtermann.
Byzantine Poetry from Pisides to Geometres.
Texts and Contexts, vol. 1. Wiener
Byzantinistische Studien, 24/1. Vienna,
2003.
Lavvas 1984. G. Lavvas. “√È fiÏÂȘ ÙˆÓ
‘¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÒÓ ‚·ÛÈÏÈÎÒÓ’: ªÈ· Û˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹
ÛÙËÓ ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌ›· ÙÔ˘ ∞Ó·ÙÔÏÈÎÔ‡
πÏÏ˘ÚÈÎÔ‡.” In Xe CIAC 1984, vol. I, 581–628.
Lavvas 1991. G. P. Lavvas. “√È ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈΤ˜
£‹‚˜ Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜: ·ÛÙÈ΋ ÔÚÁ¿ÓˆÛË Î·È
ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈο ¯·Ú·ÎÙËÚÈÛÙÈο.” ∞ÚÌfi˜.
ΔÈÌËÙÈÎfi˜ ÙfiÌÔ˜ ÛÙÔÓ Î·ıËÁËÙ‹ ¡. ∫.
ªÔ˘ÙÛfiÔ˘ÏÔ ÁÈ· Ù· 25 ¯ÚfiÓÈ· ÓÂ˘Ì·ÙÈ΋˜
ÙÔ˘ ÚÛÊÔÚ¿˜ ÛÙÔ ¶·ÓÂÈÛÙ‹ÌÈÔ, vol. ππ, 993–
98. Thessalonike, 1991.
Lavvas 2001. G. P. Lavvas. “ ¶ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌ›· ÙˆÓ
·Á›ˆÓ ÛÙÔ μ˘˙¿ÓÙÈÔ, ∏ ¤ÓÓÔÈ· ÙÔ˘ ¯ÒÚÔ˘
ÛÙË ıˆڛ· Î·È ÛÙËÓ Ú¿ÍË.” In ∏ fiÏË ÛÙÔ
∫·ÏÂȉÔÛÎfiÈÔ. ∫›ÌÂÓ· ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ÈÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘
fiÏ˘ Î·È Ù˘ ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌ›·˜, edited by G.
Lavvas, M. Marmaras, S. Tsilenis, and V.
Chastaoglou, 83–113, Athens, 2001.
Lawrence 1983. A. W. Lawrence. “A Skeletal
History of Byzantine Fortifications.” BSA 78
(1983): 412–50.
Lazaridis 1956. D. Lazaridis. √È º›ÏÈÔÈ.
Thessalonike, 1956.
Lazaridis 1965. P. Lazaridis. “ªÂ۷ȈÓÈο
ÌÓËÌ›· £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜.” ADelt 20 (1965):
Chronika B2, 324–42.
Lazaridis 1969. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ›
¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1969): 16–25.
Lazaridis 1970. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ›
¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1970): 37–49.
Lazaridis 1971. P. Lazaridis. “μÔȈٛ·.
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ Î·È ªÂ۷ȈÓÈο ªÓËÌ›·
μÔȈٛ·˜.” ∞Delt 26 (1971): Chronika μ1,
246–49.
Lazaridis 1972. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ›
¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1972): 12–48.
Lazaridis 1973. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ›
¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1973): 26–33.
Lazaridis 1973–74. P. Lazaridis. “μÔȈٛ·.
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ Î·È ªÂ۷ȈÓÈο ªÓËÌ›·
μÔȈٛ·˜.” ∞Delt 29 (1973–74): Chronika
μ2, 455–60.
Lazaridis 1975. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ›
¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1975): 49–60.
Lazaridis 1976. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·ÛًψÛȘ
Î·È Û˘ÓÙ‹ÚËÛȘ ÌÓËÌ›ˆÓ ¡¤·˜ ∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.”
PAE (1976): 551–55.
Lazaridis 1978. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ ¡¤·˜
∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1978): 34–49.
Lazaridis 1979. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ ¡¤·˜
∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1979): 56–70.
Lazaridis 1982. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ ¡¤·˜
∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1982): 95–104.
Lazaridis 1987a. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
ºıȈٛ‰ˆÓ £Ë‚ÒÓ.” PAE (1987): 108–17.
Lazaridis 1987b. P. Lazaridis. “ºıÈÒÙȉ˜
£‹‚·È.” AE (1987): 313–35.
Lazaridis 1988. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
ºıȈٛ‰ˆÓ £Ë‚ÒÓ.” PAE (1988)∞: 81–93.
Lazaridis 1989. P. Lazaridis. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
ºıȈٛ‰ˆÓ £Ë‚ÒÓ.” PAE (1989): 159–68.
Lazaridis and Borboudakis 1967. P. Lazaridis
and E. Borboudakis. “∫Ú‹ÙË. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ηÈ
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈο ÌÓËÌ›· ∫Ú‹Ù˘.” ∞Delt 23
(1968): Chronika μ2, 421–31.
Lazaridis and Romiopoulou 1964. D. I.
Lazaridis and K. Romiopoulou.
“ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·. ∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ˜ Î·È ÌÓËÌ›·
∞Ó·ÙÔÏ. ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·˜–£Ú¿Î˘.” ∞Delt 19
(1964): Chronika B3, 370–79.
Leake 1835. W. M. Leake. Travels in Northern
Greece. 4 vols. London, 1835.
Lefort 2002. J. Lefort. “The Rural Economy,
Seventh–Twelfth Centuries.” In Laiou
2002, vol. 1, 231–310.
Lefort and Morrisson 1989. Hommes et
richesses dans l’empire byzantin, edited by J.
Lefort and C. Morrisson, vol. I, Réalités
byzantines, 1. Paris, 1989.
Lemerle 1937. P. Lemerle. “Le château de
Philippes au temps de Nicéphore Phocas.”
BCH 61 (1937): 103–8.
Lemerle 1945. P. Lemerle. Philippes et la
Macédoine Orientale à l’époque chrétienne et
byzantine, Recherches d’histoire et
d’archéologie. Bibliothèque des Écoles
françaises d’Athènes et de Rome, 158.
Paris, 1945.
Lemerle 1971. P. Lemerle. Le premier
humanisme byzantin. Notes et remarques sur
enseignement et culture à Byzance des
origines au Xe siècle. Bibliothèque byzantine.
Études, 6. Paris, 1971.
Lemerle 1979. P. Lemerle. Les plus anciens
recueils des miracles de Saint Démétrius et la
pénétration des Slaves dans les Balkans, I, Le
texte. Paris, 1979.
Lemerle 1981. P. Lemerle. Les plus anciens
recueils des miracles de Saint Démétrius, II, Le
commentaire. Paris, 1981.
Leo Diakonos 1828. Leonis Diaconi Caloënsis
Historiae libri decem, edited by C. B. Hase.
CSHB. Bonn, 1828.
Leo VI 2010. The Tactica of Leo VI, edited by
G. T. Dennis. CFHB, 12. Washington, D.C.,
2010.
Liata 2003. E. D. Liata. ∞ÚÁ›· ÁË, ·fi ÙÔ
ÙÂÚÈÙfiÚÈÔ ÛÙÔ ‚ÈÏ·¤ÙÈ (Ù¤ÏË 17Ô˘, ·Ú¯¤˜ 19Ô˘
·È.). ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó. ∫¤ÓÙÚÔ ¡ÂÔÂÏÏËÓ.
∂Ú¢Ó., 82. Athens, 2003.
Lilie et al. 1999–2002. Prosopographie der
mittelbyzantinischen Zeit: Erste Abteilung
(641–867), edited by R.-J. Lilie, C. Ludwig,
Th. Pratsch, B. Zielke, et al. 6 vols. Berlin
and New York, 1999–2002.
Linton 1856. W. Linton. The scenery of Greece
and its islands. London, 1856.
Lock 1998. P. Lock. √È ºÚ¿ÁÎÔÈ ÛÙÔ ∞ÈÁ·›Ô,
1204–1500. ∞thens, 1998.
LÔehneysen 1977. W. F. von Loehneysen.
Mistra. Griechenlands Schicksal im Mittelalter.
Morea unter Franken, Byzantinern und
Osmanen. Munich, 1977.
Logiadou-Platonos 1961–62. S. LogiadouPlatonos. “πÛÙÔÚÈ΋ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÈÁÚ·Ê‹ ÂÍ
∏Ú·ÎÏ›Ԣ.” In ¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ ÙÔ˘ ∞’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
∫ÚËÙÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ = ∫Chron 15–16/2
(1961–62): 47–58.
London 2008. Byzantium, 330–1453, edited by
R. Cormack and M. Vassilaki. Exh. cat.
London, 2008.
Loomis 1977. J. W. Loomis. “Cicero and
Thessaloniki, Politics and provinces.” In
Ancient Macedonia II, Papers read at the
Second International Symposium Held in
Thessaloniki, 19–24 August 1973, 169–88.
ÿ‰Ú˘Ì· ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ ÃÂÚÛÔÓ‹ÛÔ˘ ÙÔ˘ ∞›ÌÔ˘,
155. Thessalonike, 1977.
Loungis 1996. T. Loungis. “∏ ÂͤÏÈÍË Ù˘
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ fiÏ˘ ·fi ÙÔÓ 4o ÛÙÔÓ 12o
·ÈÒÓ·.” μ˘˙·ÓÙȷο 16 (1996): 33–67.
Loupis 2005. E. Çelebi, √‰ÔÈÔÚÈÎfi ÛÙËÓ
∂ÏÏ¿‰· (1668–1671). ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ˜ – ¡ËÛÈ¿
πÔÓ›Ô˘ – ∫Ú‹ÙË – ∫˘ÎÏ¿‰Â˜ – ¡ËÛÈ¿
·Ó·ÙÔÏÈÎÔ‡ ∞ÈÁ·›Ô˘. 3rd ed. Athens, 2005.
Louvi-Kizi 2002. A. Louvi-Kizi. “Thebes.” In
Laiou 2002, vol. 2, 631–38.
Louvi-Kizi 2003. A. Louvi-Kizi. “√È ÎÙ‹ÙÔÚ˜
Ù˘ ¶ÂÚȂϤÙÔ˘ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” DCh∞∂ 24
(2003): 101–18.
Lowenthal 1971. L. J. A. Lowenthal. “A note
on the so-called Panaghia of the
Catalans.” AAA 4 (1971): 89–91.
Luttrell 1966. A. Luttrell. “The Latins of
Argos and Nauplia: 1311–1394.” Papers of
the British School at Rome 34 (1966): 34–55.
Luttrell 1978. A. Luttrell. The Hospitallers in
Cyprus, Rhodes, Greece and the West 1291–
1440. Collected Studies, Variorum Reprints.
London, 1978.
Luttrell 2000. A. Luttrell. “Rhodes Town:
1306–1350.” In Rhodes, 2400 years, vol. ππ,
309–14. Athens, 2000.
Luttrell 2003. A. Luttrell. The Town of Rhodes:
1306–1356. Rhodes, 2003.
Madriaga 2009. E. Madriaga. “∏ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÔÈÎÔÁ¤ÓÂÈ· ÙˆÓ ∞ÁÈÔıÂÔ‰ˆÚÈÙÒÓ (È):
¡ÈÎfiÏ·Ô˜ ∞ÁÈÔıÂÔ‰ˆÚ›Ù˘, ¶·ÓÈÂÚÒÙ·ÙÔ˜
ÌËÙÚÔÔÏ›Ù˘ ∞ıËÓÒÓ Î·È À¤ÚÙÈÌÔ˜.”
B˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 19 (2009): 147–81.
Maffry Talbot 1973. A.-M. Maffry Talbot.
“The Patriarch Athanasius (1289–1293;
1303–1309) and the Church.” DOP
27 (1973): 13–28.
Magdalino 1984. P. Magdalino. “Byzantine
Snobbery.” In The Byzantine Aristocracy,
IX to XIII Centuries, edited by M. Angold,
58–78. BAR. Int. Ser., 221. Oxford, 1984.
Magdalino 1993. P. Magdalino. The Empire of
Manuel I Komnenos: 1143–1180. New York,
1993.
Magdalino 1997. P. Magdalino. “In Search
of the Byzantine Courtier: Leo
Choirosphaktes and Constantine
Manasses.” In Byzantine Court Culture from
829 to 1204, edited by H. Maguire, 141–65.
Washington, D.C., 1997.
Magdalino 1998. P. Magdalino.
“Paphlagonians in Byzantine High
Society.” In Byzantine Asia Minor (6th–12th
cent.), edited by S. Lampakis, 141–50. ∂ıÓ.
ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. ¢ÈÂıÓ‹
™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 6. Athens, 1998.
Magdalino 2012. P. Magdalino. “Cultural
Change? The Context of Byzantine Poetry
from Geometres to Prodromos.” In Poetry
and Its Contexts in Eleventh-century
Byzantium, edited by B. Floris and D.
Kristoffel, 19–36. Farnham and Burlington,
2012.
Maguire 1994. H. Maguire. “The Cage of
Crosses: Ancient and Medieval Sculptures
on the ‘Little Metropolis’ in Athens.” In
£˘Ì›·Ì· ÛÙË ÌÓ‹ÌË Ù˘ §·Ûηڛӷ˜ ªÔ‡Ú·,
vol. π, 169–72. Athens, 1994.
Mailis 2011. A. Mailis. The Annexes at the
Early Christian Basilicas of Greece (4th–6th c.).
Architecture and Function. BAR. Int. Ser.,
2312. Oxford, 2011.
Mainz 2011. Wege nach Byzanz, edited by B.
Fourlas and V. Tsamakda. Exh. cat. Mainz,
2011.
Makaronas 1941–52. Ch. π. Makaronas.
“ÃÚÔÓÈο ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο, ∞Ó·Ûηʷ›,
¤ÚÂ˘Ó·È Î·È Ù˘¯·›· Â˘Ú‹Ì·Ù· ÂÓ ÙË
ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· Î·È £Ú¿ÎË Î·Ù¿ Ù· ¤ÙË 1940–
1950.” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 2 (1941–52): 590–678.
Makaronas 1951. Ch. Makaronas. “Via
Egnatia and Thessalonike.” In Studies
Presented to David Moore Robinson on his
Seventieth Birthday, edited by G. Mylonas,
380–88. St. Louis, 1951.
Makri et al. 1987–88. E. Makri, K. Tsakos,
and A. Vavylopoulou-Charitonidou. “Δfi
ƒÈ˙fiηÛÙÚÔ. ™ˆ˙fiÌÂÓ· ˘ÔÏ›ÌÌ·Ù·: ¡¤Â˜
·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ Î·È Â·Ó·¯ÚÔÓÔÏfiÁËÛË.”
DChAE 14 (1987–88): 329–63.
Makropoulou and Tzitzibasi 1993. D.
Makropoulou and A. Tzitzibasi. “™ˆÛÙÈ΋
·Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋ ¤Ú¢ӷ ÛÙËÓ Ô‰fi ∫·ÛÛ¿Ó‰ÚÔ˘
90.” ∞∂ª£ 7 (1993): 355–72.
Maksimovic’ 1981. L. Maksimovic’.
“Charakter der sozial-wirtschaftlichen
Struktur der spätbyzantinischen Stadt
(13.–15. Jh.).” XVI. Internationaler
Byzantinistenkongress. Wien 4.–9. Oktober
1981. Akten I/1 = JÖB 31/1 (1981): 149–88.
Maksimovic’ 1992. L. Maksimovic’. “∏
ªÔÓÂÌ‚·Û›· Î·È Ë ÎÔÈÓˆÓÈÎÔÔÈÎÔÓÔÌÈ΋
Ê˘ÛÈÔÁӈ̛· Ù˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ fiÏ˘ ηٿ ÙËÓ
ÂÔ¯‹ ÙˆÓ ¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁˆÓ.” In μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ·›
ªÂÏ¤Ù·È 2 (1992): 92–115.
Malamut 1988. E. Malamut. Les îles de
l’Empire byzantin, VIIIe–XIIe siècles. Byzantina
Sorbonensia, 8. Paris, 1988.
Malamut 2005. E. Malamut. “Thessalonique
830–904.” In Zwischen Polis, Provinz und
Peripherie. Beiträge zur byzantinischen
Geschichte und Kultur, edited by L. M.
Hoffmann and A. Monchizadeh, 159–90.
Mainzer Veröffentlichungen zur
Byzantinistik, 7. Wiesbaden, 2005.
Malamut and Grélois 2005. E. Malamut and
J.-P. Grélois. “Le port de Thessalonique
(IVe–XVIe siècles).” In Ports maritimes et
ports fluviaux au Moyen Aĝ e. XXXVe Congrès
de la Société des Historiens Médiévistes des
l’Enseignement Supérieur Public 2004. La
Rochelle, 5 et 6 juin 2004, 131–47. Série
Histoire Ancienne et Médiévale, 81. Paris,
2005.
Malingoudis 1988. Ph. Malingoudis, ™Ï¿‚ÔÈ
ÛÙË ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·. μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË
™Ï·‚ÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ, 1. Thessalonike, 1988.
Malliaris 2010. A. Malliaris. “ΔÔ ÕÚÁÔ˜ Î·È ÙÔ
‰È·Ì¤ÚÈÛÌ¿ ÙÔ˘ ÛÙËÓ fi„ÈÌË ‚ÂÓÂÙÈ΋
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô. ∏ ı¤ÛË Ù˘ fiÏ˘ ÛÙË ‚ÂÓÂÙÈ΋
ÂÈÎÚ¿ÙÂÈ·, ÏËı˘ÛÌȷο Î·È Á·ÈÔÎÙËÙÈο
Ê·ÈÓfiÌÂÓ·.” In Maltezou and Panopoulou
2010, 157–68.
Malmquist 1979. T. Malmquist. Byzantine
12th-century frescoes in Kastoria: Agioi
Anargyroi and Agios Nikolaos tou Kasnitzi.
Acta Universitatis Upsaliensis. Nova ser.,
18. Uppsala, 1979.
Maltezou 1988. Ch. Maltezou.
“∏ ∫Ú‹ÙË ÛÙË ‰È¿ÚÎÂÈ· Ù˘ ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘ Ù˘
μÂÓÂÙÔÎÚ·Ù›·˜ (1211–1669).” In ∫Ú‹ÙË:
πÛÙÔÚ›· ¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌfi˜, edited by N. M.
Panagiotakis, vol. II, 107–61. Crete, 1988.
Maltezou 2008. Ch. Maltezou. Δ· ∫‡ıËÚ· ÙÔÓ
ηÈÚfi Ô˘ ΢ÚÈ·Ú¯Ô‡Û·Ó ÔÈ μÂÓÂÙÔ›. Venice,
2008.
Maltezou 2010. Ch. Maltezou. “The History
of Crete during the Fifteenth Century on
the Basis of Archival Documents.” In
Athens 2010, 26–37.
Maltezou and Panopoulou 2010. Venezia –
Argos. Segni della presenza veneziana ad
Argos e nella sua regione. Atti dell’Incontro
Scientifico Internazionale. Argos, 11 ottobre
2008, edited by Ch. Maltezou and A.
Panopoulou. Convegni, Istituto ellenico di
studi bizantini e postbizantini di Venezia,
14. Athens and Venice, 2010.
Mamaloukos and Sdrolia 2006. S.
Mamaloukos and S. Sdrolia.
“∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ηٿÏÔÈ· ÛÙÔ ‘ŸÚÔ˜ ÙˆÓ
∫ÂÏÏ›ˆÓ’.” ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ŒÚÁÔ £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜ ηÈ
™ÙÂÚ¿˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·˜ 2/1 (2006): 585–98.
Mango 1976. C. Mango. Byzantine
Architecture. New York, 1976.
Mango 1980. C. Mango. Byzantium, The
Empire of New Rome. London, 1980.
Mango 1995. C. Mango. “The conversion of
the Parthenon into a Church.” DChAE 18
(1995): 201–3.
Mango 2002a. C. Mango. “A Journey Round
the Coast of the Black Sea in the Ninth
Century.” Palaeoslavica 10/1 (2002): 255–64.
Mango 2002b. C. Mango. “New Religion,
Old Culture.” In The Oxford History of
Byzantium, edited by C. Mango, 96–114.
New York, 2002.
Manolessou 2012. E. Manolessou.
ªÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ °Ï˘ÙÈ΋ Ù˘ £‹‚·˜ Î·È Û˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹
ÛÙË ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘ fiÏ˘. Ph.D.
dissertation. Athens, 2012.
Manolessou and Andrianou 2013. E.
Manolessou and E. Andrianou. “μÈÔÙ¯ÓÈ΋
ÂÁηٿÛÙ·ÛË ·Ú·ÁˆÁ‹˜ ÂÏ·›Ô˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
ÂÔ¯‹˜ ÛÙËÓ ∞Ú¯·›· ∫fiÚÈÓıÔ.” In ¢ÈÂıÓ¤˜
™˘Ó¤‰ÚÈÔ ΔÔ ·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ¤ÚÁÔ ÛÙËÓ
¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ. ΔÚ›ÔÏË, 7–11 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2012
(forthcoming).
Manolessou and Siomkos 2012. E.
Manolessou and N. Siomkos. “ŸÛÈÔ˜
¶·Ù¿ÈÔ˜ §Ô˘ÙڷΛԢ: ∞ÓȯÓ‡ÔÓÙ·˜ ÙËÓ
ÈÛÙÔÚ›· ÙÔ˘.” In ΔÚÈ·ÎÔÛÙfi ¢Â‡ÙÂÚÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜
Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 11, 12 Î·È 13 ª·˝Ô˘ 2012.
¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ ∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 68–69. Athens, 2012.
Manolessou et al. 1982. E. Manolessou, N.
Delinikolas, M. Lazari, Ch. Koilakou, V.
Papadopoulou, A. Kourenta- Raptaki, and
K. Skarmoutsou.“1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 37 (1982): Chronika
B1, 69–81.
Manolessou et al. 1988. E. Manolessou, Ai.
Pantelidou- Alexiadou, E. GhiniTsofopoulou, Ch. Koilakou, and E. Chalkia.
“1Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.”
∞Delt 43 (1988): Chronika μ1, 82–105.
Manousakas 1957. M. Manousakas.
“¡ÈÎËÊfiÚÔ˘ ªÔÛ¯ÔÔ‡ÏÔ˘ ÂÈÁÚ¿ÌÌ·Ù·
Û ¯ÂÈÚfiÁÚ·Ê· Ù˘ ‚È‚ÏÈÔı‹Î˘ ÙÔ˘.”
∂ÏÏËÓÈο 15 (1957): 232–46.
Manousakas 1959. M. Manousakas. “∏
¯ÚÔÓÔÏÔÁ›· Ù˘ ÎÙËÙÔÚÈ΋˜ ÂÈÁÚ·Ê‹˜ ÙÔ˘
∞Á›Ô˘ ¢ËÌËÙÚ›Ô˘ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” DCh∞∂ 1
(1959): 72–79.
Manousou-Della 2000. K. Manousou-Della.
“ƒfi‰Ô˜. ™ÙÔȯ›· ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋˜ ·Ó¿Ï˘Û˘
ÌÈ·˜ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜ Ô¯˘ÚˆÌ¤Ó˘ fiÏ˘.”
DCh∞∂ 21 (2000): 27–42.
Manousou-Della 2007. K. Manousou-Della.
“∏ ÚÒÈÌË ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Ù˘
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋˜ fiÏ˘ Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘.” In City of
Rhodes 2007, vol. I, 331–39.
Marchetti 1993. P. Marchetti. “Mythes et
topographie d’Argos I.” BCH 117 (1993):
211–23.
Marinou 2002. G. Marinou. ÕÁÈÔ˜ ¢ËÌ‹ÙÚÈÔ˜.
∏ ªËÙÚfiÔÏË ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯.
¢ÂÏÙ., 78. Athens, 2002.
Marinou 2006. G. Marinou. “¡¤· ÛÙÔȯ›·
ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÂͤÏÈÍË Î·È ÙË ÌÔÚÊ‹
Ù˘ ÔÓÔÌ·˙fiÌÂÓ˘ ÔÈΛ·˜ §¿ÛηÚË ÛÙÔ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” ∞∞∞ 39 (2006): 211–28.
Marinou 2009a. G. Marinou. “∏ ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋
Û˘ÁÎÚfiÙËÛË ÙÔ˘ ÔÈÎÈÛÌÔ‡.” In Sinos 2009,
55–78.
Marinou 2009b. G. Marinou. “∏ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË
Ù˘ fiÏ˘.” In Sinos 2009, 79–112.
Marinou 2012. G. Marinou. “¡¤· ÛÙÔȯ›·
ÁÈ· ÙȘ Ô¯˘ÚÒÛÂȘ ÛÙËÓ ∫¿Ùˆ ¶fiÏË ÙÔ˘
ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” In ∏ √¯˘ÚˆÌ·ÙÈ΋ ∞Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋
ÛÙÔ ∞ÈÁ·›Ô Î·È Ô ªÂ۷ȈÓÈÎfi˜ √ÈÎÈÛÌfi˜
∞Ó·‚¿ÙÔ˘ Ã›Ô˘. ÛԘ, 26–28 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘
2008, edited by A. Kavvadia, 331–44.
Chios, 2012.
Marinou and Sinos 2009. G. Marinou and S.
Sinos. “√È ÂÎÎÏËۛ˜ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” In Sinos
2009, 113–241.
Marinou et al. 1996. G. Marinou, Ai.
Bakourou, D. Charalambous, E. Pantou, V.
Albani, P. Kalamara, and ∫. Diamanti. “5Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt
51 (1996): Chronika B1, 151–82.
Marki 1983. E. Marki. “ŒÓ·˜ ¿ÁÓˆÛÙÔ˜
ÔÎÙ·ÁˆÓÈÎfi˜ Ó·fi˜ ÛÙË £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.”
ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 23 (1983): 117–33.
Marki 1990. E. Marki, “ΔÔ Ù¤ÏÔ˜ Ù˘
·Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ·˜ Î·È Ë ÂÈÛ·ÁˆÁ‹ ÙˆÓ ÓÂÎÚÒÓ
ÛÙËÓ fiÏË. ∏ ÂÚ›ÙˆÛË Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” In ¢¤Î·ÙÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜
Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, ∞ı‹Ó· 18, 19 Î·È 20 ª·˝Ô˘
1990, 41–42. ∞thens, 1990.
Marki 1991. ∂. Marki. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ·Ó‰Ô¯Â›Ô˘ ÛÙËÓ ¶‡‰Ó·.” ∞∂ª£
5 (1991): 179–90.
Marki 1996. E. Marki. “Δ· ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈο
ÎÔÈÌËÙ‹ÚÈ· ÛÙËÓ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·.” In ¢¤Î·ÙÔ ŒÎÙÔ
™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 17, 18 Î·È 19
ª·˝Ô˘ 1996. ¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ
∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È ∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 47–48.
Athens, 1996.
Marki 1997. E. Marki. “§Ô˘ÏÔ˘‰È¤˜, 1997.”
AEM£ 11 (1997): 289–93.
| 285 |
Marki 2004. E. Marki. “Δ¿ÊÔ˜ ÌÂ ·Ú¿ÛÙ·ÛË
·Ú·‰Â›ÛÔ˘ ·fi ÙË ‰˘ÙÈ΋ ÓÂÎÚfiÔÏË Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” In Kakouris et al. 2004,
355–60.
Marki 2006. E. Marki. ∏ ÓÂÎÚfiÔÏË Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ ÛÙÔ˘˜ ˘ÛÙÂÚÔڈ̷˚ÎÔ‡˜
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÔ‡˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜. Athens, 2006.
Marki 2008. E. Marki. “ΔÔ ÂÈÛÎÔÈÎfi
Û˘ÁÎÚfiÙËÌ· ÛÙȘ §Ô˘ÏÔ˘‰È¤˜ ∫›ÙÚÔ˘˜.” In
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈΤ˜ ΔÚÔ¯ÈÔ‰ÚÔÌ‹ÛÂȘ ·fi ÙË
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË ÛÙÔÓ ¶Ï·Ù·ÌÒÓ·, 89–115.
Athens, 2008.
Marki 2009. E. Marki. “√È ÛˆÛÙÈΤ˜
·Ó·Ûηʤ˜, ·ÚÈÔ˜ ·Ú¿ÁˆÓ ‰È·ÌfiÚʈÛ˘
Ù˘ ÂÈÎfiÓ·˜ Ù˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.”
∞∂ª£, EÂÙÂÈ·Îfi˜ ÙfiÌÔ˜, 205–19.
Thessalonike, 2009.
Marki 2010. E. Marki. “¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈΤ˜
Î·È ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ ·Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ˜ ÛÙÔ
¶·Ï·ÈfiηÛÙÚÔ.” In øÚ·ÈfiηÛÙÚÔ. πÛÙÔÚ›· 35
·ÈÒÓˆÓ, edited by E. Hekimoglou, 25–40.
Thessalonike, 2010.
Marki 2012. E. Marki. “∏ ¯ˆÚÔı¤ÙËÛË Ù˘
ÂÏÏËÓÈÛÙÈ΋˜ Î·È ÚˆÌ·˚΋˜ ·ÎÚfiÔÏ˘ Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢: ™ÙÔȯ›· ÂÓÙÔÈÛÌÔ‡.” In
¢ÈÓ‹ÂÛÛ·. TÈÌËÙÈÎfi˜ ÙfiÌÔ˜ ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ∫·ÙÂÚ›Ó·
ƒˆÌÈÔÔ‡ÏÔ˘, edited by P. Adam-Veleni and
K. Tzanaveari, 93–102. Thessalonike, 2012.
Marki and Chatziioannidis 2004. E. Marki
and A. Chatziioannidis. “Y‰Ú¢ÙÈο ¤ÚÁ·
ÙÔ˘ ª. ∫ˆÓÛÙ·ÓÙ›ÓÔ˘ ÛÙË £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.”
∞∂ª£ 18 (2004): 279–87.
Markoulaki 2008. S. Markoulaki. “Δ·
„ËÊȉˆÙ¿ ‰¿Â‰· ÙÔ˘ ∏Ú·ÎÏ›Ԣ Î·È ÙÔ
ÂÚÈ‚¿ÏÏÔÓ ÙÔ˘˜.” In Ioannidou-Karetsou
2008a, 107–47.
Markoulaki et al. 2004. S. Markoulaki, G.
Christodoulakos, and Ch. Fragonikolaki.
“H ·Ú¯·›· ∫›Û·ÌÔ˜ Î·È Ë ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ Ù˘
ÔÚÁ¿ÓˆÛË.” In Creta Romana e
Protobizantina, Atti del Congresso
Internazionale. Iraklion, 23–30 settembre
2000, edited by M. Livaddiotti and I.
Simiakaki, vol. II, 355–73. Padua, 2004.
Martiniani-Reber 2000. Parure d’une princesse
byzantine. Tissus archéologiques de SainteSophie de Mistra, edited by M.
Martiniani-Reber. Geneva, 2000.
Masai 1956. F. Masai. Pléthon et le Platonisme
de Mistra. Classiques de l’humanisme.
Études, 5. Paris, 1956.
Matschke 2002. K.-P. Matschke. “The Late
Byzantine Urban Economy, Thirteenth–
Fifteenth Centuries.” In Laiou 2002, vol. 2,
463–95.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi 1973. Ch.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi. √È ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ ÙÔ˘
13Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ· ÛÙËÓ ∫Ô˘ÌÂÏ›‰ÈÎË Ù˘ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿˜.
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ΛÌÂÓ· Î·È ÌÂϤٷÈ, 8.
Thessalonike, 1973.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi 1985. Ch.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi. ∏ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË Î·È
Ù· ÌÓËÌÂÈ· Ù˘. Thessalonike, 1985.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi 1992. Ch.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi. “∏ ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋
˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÛÙË £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË ÛÙÔ ‰Â‡ÙÂÚÔ
ÌÈÛfi ÙÔ˘ 14Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ·.” In ∂˘ÊÚfiÛ˘ÓÔÓ.
∞ÊȤڈ̷ ÛÙÔÓ ª·ÓfiÏË Ã·Ù˙ˉ¿ÎË, vol. 2,
658–69. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯. ¢ÂÏÙ., 46.
Athens, 1992.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi 1997. Ch.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi. “The Painting of
the Ninth Century in the Church of Saint
Andrew ‘Peristera.’” Zograf 26 (1997): 7–16.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi 2004a. Ch.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi. “Les Icônes de
l’Exposition.” In Avignon 2004, 82–193.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi 2004b. Ch.
Mavropoulou-Tsioumi. “√È μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜
ÂÈÎfiÓ˜.” In ∂Ú·ÙÂÈÓ‹ ∏Ì·ı›·, 194–231.
Berroia, 2004.
McCormick 1990. M. McCormick. Eternal
Victory: Triumphal Rulership in Late Antiquity,
Byzantium and the Early Medieval West.
| 286 |
Cambridge, 1986.
Medvedev 1973. I. P. Medvedev. Mistra,
Oč erki istorii i kultury pozdnevizantijsk.
goroda. Leningrad, 1973.
Megaw 1931–32. A. H. S. Megaw. “The
Chronology of some Middle-Byzantine
churches.” BSA 32 (1931–32): 90–130.
Megaw 1984. A. H. S. Megaw. “A cemetery
church with trefoil sanctuary in Crete.” In
Xe CIAC 1984, vol. II, 321–29.
Meleti 2013. P. Meleti. “¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfi
ÓÂÎÚÔÙ·ÊÂ›Ô ÛÙËÓ ∞Ú¯·›· ∫fiÚÈÓıÔ.” In
Corinthia and the Northeast Peloponnesus:
Topography and History from Prehistoric
Times until the End of Antiquity, Kolloquium,
Deutsches Archäologisches Institut, Athen / LZ’
Ephorie Korinth, 26.–29.03.2009 in Loutraki.
Athens, 2013 (in press).
Meletios 2007. Mitropolitis Nikopoleos
Meletios. “√ ∞fiÛÙÔÏÔ˜ ¶·‡ÏÔ˜ ÛÙË
¡ÈÎfiÔÏË.” In Zachos 2007, vol. 1, 123–33.
Mentzos 2005. A. Mentzos. “∑ËÙ‹Ì·Ù·
ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›·˜ ÙˆÓ ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÒÓ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.”
∂ÁÓ·Ù›· 9 (2005): 101–56.
Mentzos 2010. A. Mentzos. “Reflections on
the Architectural History of the Tetrarchic
Palace Complex at Thessalonikē.” In
Nasrallah et al. 2010, 333–59.
Mertzios 1969–70. K. Mertzios. “∂ȉ‹ÛÂȘ
ÂÚ› Ù˘ ™ÙÂÚ¿˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜ ÂÎ ÙˆÓ ∞گ›ˆÓ
Ù˘ μÂÓÂÙ›·˜ (1690–1736).” ∂ÂÙËÚ›˜
∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜ ™ÙÂÚÂÔÂÏÏ·‰ÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ 2
(1969–70): 339–436.
Metcalf 1962. D. M. Metcalf. “The Slavonic
Threat to Greece, circa 580. Some
evidence from Athens.” Hesperia 31
(1962): 134–57.
Metcalf 1973. D. M. Metcalf. “Corinth in the
Ninth Century: The Numismatic Evidence.”
Hesperia 42 (1973): 180–251.
Mexia 2006a. A. Mexia. “¢‡Ô Ì·ÚÌ¿ÚÈÓ˜
‰È·ÎÔÛÌËÙÈΤ˜ ϿΘ ÛÙÔÓ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.”
DCh∞∂ 27 (2006): 115–24.
Mexia 2006b. A. Mexia. “∂Ï·ÈÔÎÔÌ›· ÛÙË
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ §·Î‰·›ÌÔÓ·. ¶ËÁ¤˜ ηÈ
·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ÙÂÎÌ‹ÚÈ·.” §·ÎˆÓÈη› ™Ô˘‰·›
18 (2006): 205–23.
Michael Choniates 1879–80. Μιχαήλ
Ἀκομινάτου τοῦ Χωνιάτου, Τὰ σωζόμενα,
edited by S. Lambros. 2 vols. Athens,
1879–80.
Michael Choniates, Letters 2001. Michaelis
Choniatae Epistulae, edited by F. Kolovou.
CFHB, 41. Berlin and New York, 2001.
Michael Psellos 1992. Michaelis Pselli,
Poemata, edited by L. G. Westerink.
Bibliotheca Scriptorum Graecorum et
Romanorum Teubneriana. Stuttgart, 1992.
Michailidis 1981. M. Michailidis. “Les
peintures murales de l’église de Saint-Jean
le Théologien à Véria.” In Actes du XVe
Congrès International d’Études byzantines.
Athènes, Septembre 1976. II. Art et
Archéologie. Communications, vol. 2, 469–
88. Athens, 1981.
Michalaga 2010. D. S. Michalaga. “∏
ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋ ÈÛÙÔÚ›· ÙÔ˘ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ ηٿ ÙË
‰Â‡ÙÂÚË ‚ÂÓÂÙÔÎÚ·Ù›·.” In Maltezou and
Panopoulou 2010, 169–88.
Miles 1954. G. C. Miles. “Byzantium and the
Arabs: relations in Crete and Aegean.”
DOP 18 (1964): 1–32.
Miles 1971. G. C. Miles. “Coins from the
excavations at Ag. Petros, Heracleion,
Crete.” American Numismatic Society
Museum Notes 17 (1971): 163–72.
Miles 1975. G. C. Miles. “Excavations at Ag.
Petros, Herakleion 1967.” In ¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ
ÙÔ˘ °’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ∫ÚËÙÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ.
ƒ¤ı˘ÌÓÔÓ, 18–23 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1971, vol. III,
225–30. Athens, 1975.
Miljkovic’-Pepek 1967. P. Miljkovic’-Pepek.
Deloto na zografite Mihailo i Eutihij. Skopje,
1967.
Miller 1909–10. W. Miller. πÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘
ºÚ·ÁÎÔÎÚ·Ù›·˜ ÂÓ ∂ÏÏ¿‰È, translated by S.
Lambros. 2 vols. Athens, 1909–10.
Millet 1899. G. Millet. “Inscriptions
byzantines de Mistra.” BCH 23 (1899):
97–156.
Millet 1906. G. Millet. “Inscriptions inédites
de Mistra.” BCH 30 (1906): 453–66.
Millet 1910. G. Millet. Monuments byzantins
de Mistra. Monuments de l’art byzantin, II.
Paris, 1910.
Millet 1916a. G. Millet. L’école grecque dans
l’architecture Byzantine. Paris, 1916.
Millet 1916b. G. Millet. Recherches sur
l’iconographie de l’Evangile aux XIVe, XVe, et
XVIe siècles d’après les monuments de Mistra,
de la Macédoine et du Mont-Athos.
Bibliothèque des Écoles françaises
d’Athènes et de Rome, 109. Paris, 1916.
ªiracles 1997. ∞Á›Ô˘ ¢ËÌËÙÚ›Ô˘ ı·‡Ì·Ù·. √È
Û˘ÏÏÔÁ¤˜ ·Ú¯ÈÂÈÛÎfiÔ˘ πˆ¿ÓÓÔ˘ ηÈ
∞ÓˆÓ‡ÌÔ˘, √ ‚›Ô˜ Ù· ı·‡Ì·Ù· Î·È Ë
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË ÙÔ˘ ∞Á›Ô˘ ¢ËÌËÙÚ›Ô˘, edited by
Ch. Bakirtzis, translated by ∞. Sideri.
Athens, 1997.
Misiou 2002. D. Misiou. “‘Μνημονευτέον
ὑμῖν ἐστὶν ὅτι οἱ Ρωμαίοι ἐσμέν, ὅτι τι
Φιλίππου καὶ Ἀλεξάνδρου ὑμῖν ὑπάρχει
Πατρίς.’ ∏ ÈÛÙÔÚÈ΋ Û˘Ó¤¯ÂÈ· ÙÔ˘
∂ÏÏËÓÈÛÌÔ‡.” In ∏ ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· ηٿ ÙËÓ ÂÔ¯‹
ÙˆÓ ¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁˆÓ, μ’ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË,
14–20 ¢ÂÎÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1992, 105–21.
Thessalonike, 2002.
Molho and Mevorah 1938. M. Molho and
A. Mevorah. Histoire des Israelites de
Castoria. Thessalonike, 1938.
Mommsen 1868. A. Mommsen. Athenae
Christianae. Leipzig, 1868.
Moravcsik 1961. G. Moravcsik. “Sagen und
Legenden über Kaiser Basileios I.” DOP 15
(1961): 59–126.
Morgan 1942. Ch. H. Morgan ππ. The
Byzantine Pottery. Corinth, XI. Cambridge,
Mass., 1942.
Morrisson 2002. C. Morrisson. “ Byzantine
Money: Its Production and Circulation.” In
Laiou 2002, vol. 3, 909–66.
Morrisson 2003. C. Morrisson. “The
Emperor, the Saint, and the City: Coinage
and Money in Thessaloniki from the
Thirteenth to the Fifteenth Century. DOP
57 (2003): 173–203.
Morrisson and Sodini 2002. C. Morrisson
and J. P. Sodini. “The Sixth–Century
Economy.” In Laiou 2002, vol. 1, 171–220.
Mouriki 1966–69. D. Mouriki. “∏ ¶·Ó·Á›·
Î·È ÔÈ ıÂÔ¿ÙÔÚ˜, ·ÊËÁËÌ·ÙÈ΋ ÛÎËÓ‹ ‹
ÂÈÎÔÓÈÛÙÈ΋ ·Ú¿ÛÙ·ÛË.” DCh∞∂ 5 (1966–
69): 31–56.
Mouriki 1970. D. Mouriki. “∞È ‚È‚ÏÈη›
ÚÔÂÈÎÔÓ›ÛÂȘ Ù˘ ¶·Ó·Á›·˜ ÂȘ ÙÔÓ
ÙÚÔ‡ÏÏÔÓ Ù˘ ¶ÂÚȂϤÙÔ˘ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.”
∞Delt 25 (1970): ªeletai, 217–51.
Mouriki 1978. D. Mouriki. “Stylistic Trends in
Monumental Painting of Greece at the
Beginning of the Fourteenth Century.” In
L’art byzantin au début du XIVe siècle.
Symposium de Grač anica 1973, 55–83.
Belgrade, 1978.
Mouriki 1980–81. D. Mouriki. “Stylistic
Trends in Monumental painting of Greece
During the Eleventh and Twelfth Centuries.”
DOP 34–35 (1980–81): 77–124.
Mouriki 1991. D. Mouriki. “The Wall
Paintings of the Pantanassa at Mistra:
Models of a Painter’s Workshop in the
Fifteenth Century. In The Twilight of
Byzantium, edited by S. C’určic’ and D.
Mouriki, 217–50. Princeton, N.J., 1991.
Moustakas 2012. K. Moustakas.
“ªÂıÔ‰ÔÏÔÁÈο ˙ËÙ‹Ì·Ù· ÛÙËÓ ÚÔÛ¤ÁÁÈÛË
ÙˆÓ ÏËı˘ÛÌÈ·ÎÒÓ ÌÂÁÂıÒÓ Ù˘
˘ÛÙÂÚÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ fiÏ˘.” In Kiousopoulou
2012, 225–51.
Moutsopoulos 1974. N. Moutsopoulos.
“∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿, πÛÙÔÚ›·, ªÓËÌ›·, §·ÔÁÚ·Ê›·.”
∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋ ∂ÂÙËÚ›˜ ¶ÔÏ˘Ù¯ÓÈ΋˜ ™¯ÔÏ‹˜
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ 6 (1974): 257–474.
Moutsopoulos 1992. N. Moutsopoulos.
∂ÎÎÏËۛ˜ Ù˘ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿˜, 9Ô˜–10Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜.
Thessalonike, 1992.
Moutsopoulos 2001. N. K. Moutsopoulos.
TÔ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi οÛÙÚÔ Ù˘ ª˘Á‰ÔÓÈ΋˜ ƒÂÓÙ›Ó·˜,
Ë Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Î·È Ë ‡‰Ú¢ÛË ÙÔ˘ ÔÈÎÈÛÌÔ‡,
edited by E. Vagdatzoglou-Bakogianni.
ƒÂÓÙ›Ó·, II. Athens, 2001.
Moutzali 2002. ∞. G. Moutzali. “∏ fiÏË ÙˆÓ
¶·ÙÚÒÓ Î·Ù¿ ÙÔÓ 6o η› 7o ·ÈÒÓ·. ∏
ª˘ıÔÏÔÁ›· Ù˘ ÂÁηٿÏÂȄ˘.” In Themelis
and V. Konti 2002, 174–88.
Moyseidou 2008. Mo˘Û›· Û ªÓËÌ›·: Ì›·
ÚfiÎÏËÛË. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∏ÌÂÚ›‰·˜. B˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ηÈ
ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfi ªÔ˘Û›Ô, 25 ∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘ 2002,
edited by Y. Moyseidou. ªÈÎÚ¿
ªÔ˘ÛÂÈÔÏÔÁÈο, 2. ∞thens, 2008.
Mylona 1998. Z. A. Mylona. ªÔ˘Û›Ô
∑·Î‡ÓıÔ˘. Athens, 1998.
Mystras 2001. The City of Mystras. Byzantine
Hours. Works and Days in Byzantium. Athens
– Thessaloniki – Mystras, edited by P.
Kalamara and A. Mexia. Exh. cat. Athens,
2001.
Nar 1997. A. Nar. “∫ÔÈÓÔÙÈ΋ ÔÚÁ¿ÓˆÛË Î·È
‰Ú·ÛÙËÚÈfiÙËÙ· Ù˘ ‚ڷ˚΋˜ ÎÔÈÓfiÙËÙ·˜ Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” In Τοῖς ἀγαθοῖς
βασιλεύουσα. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË, πÛÙÔÚ›· ηÈ
¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌfi˜, edited by I. K. Chasiotis,
199–219. Thessalonike, 1997.
Nasrallah 2010. L. Nasrallah. “Early Christian
Interpretation in Image and Word: Canon,
Sacred Text and the Mosaic of Moni
Latomou.” In Nasrallah et al. 2010, 361–96.
Nasrallah et al. 2010. From Roman to Early
Christian Thessalonike. Studies in Religion and
Archaeology, edited by L. Nassrallah, Ch.
Bakirtzis, and St. J. Friesen. Harvard
Theological Studies, 64. Cambridge, Mass.,
2010.
¡∂. ¡¤Ô˜ ∂ÏÏËÓÔÌӋ̈Ó.
Nelson 1986. R. Nelson. “The Manuscripts of
Antonios Malakes and the Collecting and
Appreciation of Illuminated Books in the
Early Palaeologan Period.” JÖB 36 (1986):
229–54.
Nelson 1991. R. S. Nelson. Theodore
Hagiopetrites. A Late Byzantine Scribe and
Illuminator. Veröff. der Kommission für
Byzantinistik, 4. Denkschriften – Österr.
Ak. der Wiss.. Philos.-hist. Klasse, 217.
Vienna, 1991.
Nelson 1999. R. S. Nelson. “Tales of Two
Cities: The Patronage of Early Palaeologan
Art and Architecture in Constantinople
and Thessaloniki.” In Manuel Panselinos and
his Age, edited by L. Mavrommatis and K.
Nikolaou, 127–45. National Hellenic
Research Foundation. Institute for
Byzantine Research, Byzantium Today, 3.
Athens, 1999.
Nerantzi-Varmazi 2004. B. NerantziVarmazi. “ÕÓıÚˆÔÈ Î·È ÂÚÈ‚¿ÏÏÔÓ ÛÙÔ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi οÛÙÚÔ Ù˘ μÂÚÔ›·˜.” In °ÓˆÚÈÌ›·
Ì ÙË °Ë ÙÔ˘ ∞ÏÂÍ¿Ó‰ÚÔ˘. ∏ ÂÚ›ÙˆÛË ÙÔ˘
¡ÔÌÔ‡ ∏Ì·ı›·˜: πÛÙÔÚ›·–∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·.
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋˜ ¢ÈËÌÂÚ›‰·˜ (7–8
πÔ˘Ó›Ô˘ 2003), 155–60. Thessalonike, 2004.
Nesbitt and Wiita 1975. J. Nesbitt and J.
Wiita. “A confraternity of the Comnenian
Era.” BZ 68 (1975): 360–84.
Neville 2004. L. Neville. Authority in Byzantine
Provincial Society, 950–1100. Cambridge,
2004.
New York 2004. Byzantium. Faith and Power
(1261–1557), edited by H. C. Evans. Exh.
cat. New York, 2004.
Nicholas of Methone 1892. “Nikolaos von
Methone,” edited by J. Dräseke. BZ 1
(1892): 438–78.
Nicol 1957. D. Nicol. The Despotate of Epiros.
Oxford, 1957.
Nicol 1984. D. Nicol. The despotate of Epiros,
1267–1479. A contribution to the history of
Greece in the Middle Ages. Cambridge, 1984.
Nicol 1997. D. Nicol. “Epirus as an
Independent ‘State’, The ‘Despotate’ of
Epirus.” In Sakellariou 1997, 198–216.
Nielsen 1990. I. Nielsen. Thermae et Balnea:
The Architecture and Cultural History of
Roman Public Baths, translated by P. Crabb.
Aarhus, 1990.
Nigdelis 1994. P. M. Nigdelis. “Synagoge(n)
und Gemeinde der Juden in Thessaloniki:
Fragen aufgrund einer neuen jüdischen
Grabinschrift der Kaiserzeit.” Zeitschrift für
Papyrologie und Epigraphik 102 (1994):
297–306.
Nigdelis 1997. P. M. Nigdelis. “∞fi ÙÔÓ
∫¿ÛÛ·Ó‰ÚÔ ÛÙÔÓ °·Ï¤ÚÈÔ: ۯ‰›·ÛÌ·
ÈÛÙÔÚ›·˜ Ù˘ ·Ú¯·›·˜ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.”
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓÈΤˆÓ ¶fiÏȘ 1 (1997): 21–29.
Nigdelis 2010. P. M. Nigdelis. “Voluntary
Associations in Roman Thessalonikē: In
Search of Identity and Support of
Cosmopolitan Society.” In Nasrallah et al.
2010, 13–47.
Niketas Choniates 1835. Nicetae Choniatae,
Historia, edited by I. Bekker. CSHB. Bonn,
1835.
Niketas Choniates, Historia 1975. Nicetae
Choniatae, Historia, edited by π.-∞. van
Dieten. CFHB, 11. Berlin and New York,
1975.
Niketas Magistros, Letters 1973. Niketas
Magistros, Lettres d’un exilé (928–946), edited
by L. G. Westerink. Le monde byzantin.
Paris, 1973.
Niketas Magistros, Life of Theoktiste of
Lesbos 1925. Acta Sanctorum Novembris,
vol. 4, 224–33. Brussels, 1925. – ∂nglish
translation by A. Hero in Talbot 1996.
Noble 1968. T. F. X. Noble. The Republic of St.
Peter: The Birth of the Papal State, 680–825.
Philadelphia, 1968.
Nystazopoulou-Pelekidou 2000. M.
Nystazopoulou-Pelekidou. ™Ï·‚ÈΤ˜
ÂÁηٷÛÙ¿ÛÂȘ ÛÙË ªÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·. ∂ıÓ.
ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. Ÿ„ÂȘ Ù˘
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∫ÔÈÓˆÓ›·˜, 8. Athens, 2000.
√DB. Oxford Dictionary of Byzantium.
Oikonomides 1979a. N. Oikonomides. “∏
ÂÓÔÔ›ËÛË ÙÔ˘ ¢ڷÛÈ·ÙÈÎÔ‡ ¯ÒÚÔ˘.” πn
IEE. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi˜ ÂÏÏËÓÈÛÌfi˜ – ªÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ›
¯ÚfiÓÔÈ, vol. 8, 98–179. Athens, 1979.
Oikonomides 1979b. N. Oikonomides. “To
Ó¤Ô ÎÚ¿ÙÔ˜ Ù˘ ̤Û˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘.” πn IEE. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi˜ ÂÏÏËÓÈÛÌfi˜ –
ªÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ› ¯ÚfiÓÔÈ, vol. 8, 154–79.
Athens, 1979.
Oikonomides 1984. N. Oikonomides. Actes
de Docheiariou. Archives de l’Athos, 13.
Paris, 1984.
Oikonomides 1992. N. Oikonomides. “The
First Century of the ªonastery of Hosios
Loukas.” DOP 46 (1992): 245–55
Oikonomides 1996. N. Oikonomides. “The
medieval Via Egnatia.” In The Via Egnatia
under Ottoman Rule (1380–1699), edited by
E. Zachariadou, 9–16. Rethymnon, 1996.
Oikonomides 1998. N. Oikonomides.
“L’Archonte slave de l’Hellade au VIIIe
siècle.” Vizantiiskii Vremennik 55 (1998):
111–18.
Oikonomides 2004. N. Oikonomides.
“Ÿ„ÈÌË ÈÂÚ·ÔÛÙÔÏ‹ ÛÙË §·ÎˆÓ›·.” In √
ÌÔÓ·¯ÈÛÌfi˜ ÛÙËÓ ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ, 4Ôs–15os ·È.,
edited by V. Konti, 29–35. ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú.
∂Ú¢Ó., πÓÛÙÈÙ. μ˘˙. ∂Ú¢Ó. ¢ÈÂıÓ‹
™˘ÌfiÛÈ·, 14. Athens, 2004.
Oikonomidou 1992. M. Oikonomidou.
“∞Ó·ÛÎfiËÛË Ù˘ ÓÔÌÈÛÌ·ÙÔÎÔ›·˜ ÙÔ˘
¢ÂÛÔÙ¿ÙÔ˘ Ù˘ ∏›ÚÔ˘ (1204–1268).” In
Chrysos 1992, 95–99.
Oikonomidou et al. 1992. M. Oikonomidou,
I. Touratsoglou, and I. Tsourti. “™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹
ÛÙËÓ ¤Ú¢ӷ Ù˘ ΢ÎÏÔÊÔÚ›·˜ ÙˆÓ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ÓÔÌÈÛÌ¿ÙˆÓ ÛÙËÓ ◊ÂÈÚÔ
(1204–1332).” In Chrysos 1992, 101–23.
Oikonomou 1987. A. Oikonomou. “∏
ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÙÔÓ12o ·ÈÒÓ·
ÛÙËÓ ∞ÚÁÔÏ›‰·.” ∂ÏϤ‚ÔÚÔ˜ 3–4 (1987):
153–59.
Oikonomou-Laniado 1993. A. OikonomouLaniado. “La céramique protomajolique
d’Argos.” In La ceramica nel mondo
bizantino tra XI e XV secolo e i suoi rapporti
con l’Italia, Atti del Seminario Certosa di
Pontignano. Siena, 11–13 marzo 1991, edited
by S. Gelichi, 307–16. Quaderni del
dipartimento di archeologia e storia delle
arti. Sezione archeologica. Università di
Siena, 34. Florence, 1993.
Oikonomou-Laniado 1997a. A. OikonomouLaniado. “Céramique commune byzantine
d’Argos.” In La céramique médiévale en
Méditerranée, Actes du VIe Congrès de l’AIECM
2. Aix-en-Provence, 13–18 novembre 1995,
237–38. Aix-en-Provence, 1997.
Oikonomou-Laniado 1997b. A. OikonomouLaniado. “ΔÔ ÕÚÁÔ˜ ·fi ÙÔÓ 4o ÛÙÔÓ 7o
·ÈÒÓ·.” ¢¤Î·ÙÔ Œ‚‰ÔÌÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘.
∞ı‹Ó· 23, 24 Î·È 25 ª·˝Ô˘ 1997. ¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ·
Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ ∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 51–52. ∞thens, 1997.
Oikonomou-Laniado 1998. A. OikonomouLaniado. “Les cimetières paléochrétiens
d’Argos.” In Pariente and Touchais 1998,
405–16.
Oikonomou-Laniado 1998–99. A.
Oikonomou-Laniado. “Une représentation
pornographique sur un tesson d’Argos
byzantine.” DChAE 20 (1998–99): 259–60.
Oikonomou-Laniado 2003. A. OikonomouLaniado. Argos Paléochrétienne. Contribution
à l’étude du Péloponnèse Byzantin. BAR. Int.
Ser., 1173. Oxford, 2003.
Oikonomou-Laniado 2006. A. OikonomouLaniado. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÎÂÚ·ÌÈ΋ ·fi ÙÔ
ÕÚÁÔ˜ (12Ô˜–13Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜).” In ∞’
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋ ™‡ÓÔ‰Ô˜ ¡fiÙÈ·˜ Î·È ¢˘ÙÈ΋˜
∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜, ™Δ’ ∂ÊÔÚ›· ¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ Î·È
∫Ï·ÛÈÎÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ, 6Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ. ¶¿ÙÚ·, 9–12 πÔ˘Ó›Ô˘
1996, 345–48. Athens, 2006.
Oikonomou-Laniado 2009. A. OikonomouLaniado. “ΔÔ ÕÚÁÔ˜ ηٿ ÙË ÌÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” In ªÓ‹ÌË Δ·ÛԇϷ˜ √ÈÎÔÓfiÌÔ˘
(1998–2008), edited by I. D. Varalis and G.
A. Pikoulas, 205–14. Volos, 2009.
OJA. Oxford Journal of Archaeology.
Orgels 1964. P. Orgels. “En marge d’un
texte hagiographique (Vie de S. Pierre
d’Argos, 19): La dernière invasion slave
dans le Péloponnèse (923–925).” Byzantion
34 (1964): 271–85.
Orlandos 1935. A. K. Orlandos. “∏
ÔÚıÔÌ·ÚÌ¿ÚˆÛȘ ÙÔ˘ ÂÓ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿ Ó·Ô‡ Ù˘
√‰ËÁËÙÚ›·˜.” ∞μª∂ 1 (1935): 152–60.
Orlandos 1936a. A. K. Orlandos. “¢·ÓÈ‹Ï Ô
ÚÒÙÔ˜ ÎÙ›ÙˆÚ ÙˆÓ ∞Á›ˆÓ £ÂÔ‰ÒÚˆÓ ÙÔ˘
ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” ∂∂μS 12 (1936): 443–48.
Orlandos 1936b. A. Orlandos. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿
ªÓËÌ›· Ù˘ ÕÚÙ˘.” ∞μª∂ 2 (1936).
Orlandos 1937. A. K. Orlandos. “Δ· ·Ï¿ÙÈ·
Î·È Ù· Û›ÙÈ· ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” ∞μª∂ 3 (1937):
3–114.
Orlandos 1938. A. K. Orlandos. “Δ·
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ÌÓËÌ›· Ù˘ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿˜.” ∞μª∂ 4
(1938).
Orlandos 1939–40. A. K. Orlandos. “∏
ÌËÙÚfiÔÏȘ ÙˆÓ ™ÂÚÚÒÓ.” ∞μª∂ 5 (1939–
40): 153–66.
Orlandos 1948. A. Orlandos. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ηÈ
ÌÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ÌÓËÌ›· ƒfi‰Ô˘.” ∞μª∂ 6
(1948).
Orlandos 1952. A. K. Orlandos. ∏ ͢ÏfiÛÙÂÁÔ˜
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ Ù˘ ªÂÛÔÁÂȷ΋˜
ÏÂοÓ˘, vol. 1. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯.
∂Ù., 35. Athens, 1952.
Orlandos 1963. A. K. Orlandos. ∏
¶·ÚËÁÔÚ‹ÙÈÛÛ· Ù˘ ÕÚÙ˘. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ
∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 52. Athens, 1963.
Orlandos 1971. A. K. Orlandos. “Quelques
notes complémentaires sur les maisons
paléologuiennes de Mistra.” In Art et
Société à Byzance sous les Paléologues. Actes
du Colloque organisé par l’ Association
Internationale des Études Byzantines a Venise
en Septembre 1968, 75–82. Bibliothèque de
l’Institut hellénique d’ études byzantines et
post-byzantines de Venise, 4. Venice, 1971.
Orlandos 1972–73. A. K. Orlandos. “ΔÔ
Ù¤ÌÏÔÓ Ù˘ ∞Á›·˜ £ÂÔ‰ÒÚ·˜ ÕÚÙ˘.” ∂∂μS
39–40 (1972–73): 476–92.
Orlandos 1973–74. A. K. Orlandos. “EÓ
·ÎfiÌË ÂȉfiÁÏ˘ÊÔÓ ·fi ÙËÓ ÕÚÙ·Ó.”
DChAE 7 (1973–74): 121–26.
Orlandos and Pallas 1959. A. K. Orlandos
and D. I. Pallas. “¢ÔÎÈÌ·ÛÙÈ΋ ·Ó·Ûηʋ
·‡Ïˆ˜ ÂÓ ¡ÈÎÔfiÏÂÈ.” P∞∂ (1959):
98–113.
Orlandos and Sotiriou 1937. A. K. Orlandos
and G. Sotiriou. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ›
¡ÈÎÔfiψ˜.” P∞∂ (1937): 78–83.
Orlandos and Vranousis 1973. A. K.
Orlandos and L. Vranousis. Δ· ¯·Ú¿ÁÌ·Ù·
ÙÔ˘ ¶·ÚıÂÓÒÓÔ˜. Athens, 1973.
Ostrogorsky 1959. G. Ostrogorsky.
“Byzantine Cities in the Middle Ages.”
DOP 13 (1959): 47–66.
Ostrogorsky 1971. G. Ostrogorsky.
“Observations on the Aristocracy in
Byzantium.” DOP 25 (1971): 3–32.
Ousterhout 1999. R. G. Ousterhout. Master
Builders of Byzantium. Princeton, N.J., 1999.
P∞∂. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋˜
∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜.
Pallas 1956. D. I. Pallas. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜ ÂÓ §Â¯·›ˆ.” P∞∂ (1956), 164–77.
Pallas 1957. D. I. Pallas. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ Ù˘
‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜ ÙÔ˘ §Â¯·›Ô˘.” PAE (1957): 95–104.
Pallas 1958. D. I. Pallas. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ Ù˘
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋˜ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜ ÙÔ˘
§Â¯·›Ô˘.” PAE (1958): 119–34.
Pallas 1959a. D. I. Pallas. “Über die
Datierung eines Kapitells der Basilika von
Lechaion (Korinth).” BZ 63 (1959): 69–75.
Pallas 1959b. D. I. Pallas. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ
‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜ §Â¯·›Ô˘.” PAE (1959): 126–40.
Pallas 1960. D. I. Pallas. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ› ÂÓ
§Â¯·›ˆ.” PAE (1960): 144–70.
Pallas 1961. D. I. Pallas. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ ÂÓ
§Â¯·›ˆ. ΔÔ ‚·ÙÈÛÙ‹ÚÈÔÓ Ù˘
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋˜ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜.” PAE (1961):
137–54.
Pallas 1965. D. I. Pallas. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈη›
¤ÚÂ˘Ó·È ÂÓ §Â¯·›ˆ.” PAE (1965): 137–66.
Pallas 1971. D. I. Pallas. “Epiros.” RbK II
(1971): 207–34.
Pallas 1977. D. I. Pallas. Les monuments
paléochrétiens de Grèce découverts de 1959 à
1973. Sussidi allo studio delle antichità
cristiane, 5. Vatican City, 1977.
Pallas 1979. D. I. Pallas. “Corinthe et
Nikopolis pendant le bas moyen-âge.”
FelRav 118 (1979): 93–142.
Pallas 1980. D. I. Pallas. “L’Illyricum Oriental.
Aperçu historique. La problématique de
son archéologie chrétienne.” £ÂÔÏÔÁ›· 51
(1980): 62–76.
Pallas 1984. D. I. Pallas. “L’edifice culturel
chrétien et la liturgie dans l’Illyricum
oriental.” In Xe CIAC 1984, vol. I, 85–158.
Pallas 1987a. D. I. Pallas. “∏ μ·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ÙˆÓ
∫ÂÁ¯ÚÂÒÓ.” ∂∂μS 47 (1987): 295–309.
Pallas 1987b. D. I. Pallas. “√È ¯·Ú·ÎÙ‹Ú˜ ηÈ
Ë ·ÎÙÈÓÔ‚ÔÏ›· Ù˘ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋˜
·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋˜ ÛÙË ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË.” In Chrysos
1987, 225–39.
Pallas 1987–88. D. I. Pallas, ™˘Ó·ÁˆÁ‹
ÌÂÏÂÙÒÓ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ (Δ¤¯ÓË–
§·ÙÚ›·–∫ÔÈÓˆÓ›·). 2 vols. ∞thens,
1987–88.
Pallas 1989. D. I. Pallas. “∏ ∞ı‹Ó· ÛÙ· ¯ÚfiÓÈ·
Ù˘ ÌÂÙ¿‚·Û˘ ·fi ÙËÓ ·Ú¯·›· Ï·ÙÚ›· ÛÙËÓ
¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋, Δ· ·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ‰Â‰Ô̤ӷ.”
∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋ ∂ÂÙËÚ›˜ £ÂÔÏÔÁÈ΋˜ ™¯ÔÏ‹˜
¶·ÓÂÈÛÙËÌ›Ô˘ ∞ıËÓÒÓ 28 (1989): 851–930.
Pallas 1990. D. I. Pallas. “Korinth.” RbK 4
(1990): 745–811.
Pallas and Lazaridis 1960. D. I. Pallas and P.
Lazaridis. “ªÂ۷ȈÓÈο
∞ÚÁÔÏȉÔÎÔÚÈÓı›·˜.” ADelt 16 (1969):
Chronika B, 95–101.
Pallis 2006. G. Pallis. “¡ÂfiÙÂÚ· ÁÈ· ÙÔ
ÂÚÁ·ÛÙ‹ÚÈÔ ÁÏ˘ÙÈ΋˜ Ù˘ ™·Ì·Ú›Ó·˜ (Ù¤ÏË
12Ô˘–·Ú¯¤˜ 13Ô˘ ·È.).” DCh∞∂ 27 (2006):
91–100.
Panagiotakis 1961–62. N. Panagiotakis.
“∑ËÙ‹Ì·Ù· ÙÈÓ· Ù˘ ηٷÎÙ‹Ûˆ˜ Ù˘ ∫Ú‹Ù˘
˘fi ÙˆÓ ∞Ú¿‚ˆÓ.” In ¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ ÙÔ˘ ∞’
¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ∫ÚËÙÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ = ∫Chron
16–17/2 (1961–62): 9–41.
Panayotidi 1989. M. Panayotidi. “The
Character of Monumental Painting in the
Tenth Century: The Question of
Patronage.” In Constantine VII
Porphyrogenitus and his Age: Second
International Byzantine Conference. Delphi,
22–26 July 1987, 285–331. Athens, 1989.
Panayotidi 2006. M. Panayotidi.
“∏ ÚÔÛˆÈÎfiÙËÙ· ‰‡Ô ·Ú¯fiÓÙˆÓ
Ù˘ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿˜ Î·È Ô ¯·Ú·ÎÙ‹Ú·˜
Ù˘ fiÏ˘ ÛÙÔ ‰Â‡ÙÂÚÔ ÌÈÛfi ÙÔ˘ 12Ô˘
·ÈÒÓ·.” In ¢ÒÚÔÓ. ΔÈÌËÙÈÎfi˜ ÙfiÌÔ˜ ÛÙÔÓ
ηıËÁËÙ‹ ¡›ÎÔ ¡ÈÎÔÓ¿ÓÔ, 157–67.
Thessalonike, 2006.
Panayotopoulou 1998. A. Panayotopoulou.
“ƒˆÌ·˚ο Î·È ˘ÛÙÂÚÔڈ̷˚ο ÏÔ˘ÙÚ¿ ÛÙÔ
ÕÚÁÔ˜.” In Pariente and Touchais 1998,
373–84.
Panic’ and Babic’ 1988. D. Panic’ and G.
Babic’. Bogorodica Ljevis
̌ ka. Belgrade, 1988.
Pantelidou-Alexiadou 2005a. A. PantelidouAlexiadou. “∂Ú›ȷ ·ÁÚÔÙÈÎÔ‡
Û˘ÁÎÚÔÙ‹Ì·ÙÔ˜ ÛÙË ÏˆÊfiÚÔ ¶ÂÓÙ¤Ï˘.” In
∞ÙÙÈ΋˜ √‰Ô‡ ÂÚÈ‹ÁËÛË, 111–16. Athens,
2005.
Pantelidou-Alexiadou 2005b. A. PantelidouAlexiadou. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ ÛÙÔ ÂÛˆÙÂÚÈÎfi ηÈ
ÛÙÔÓ ÚÔ·‡ÏÂÈÔ ¯ÒÚÔ ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡ Ù˘ ∞Á.
£¤ÎÏ·˜ ÛÙÔÓ ™Ù·˘Úfi ∞Á›·˜ ¶·Ú·Û΢‹˜.”
In ∞ÙÙÈ΋˜ √‰Ô‡ ÂÚÈ‹ÁËÛË, 147–55. Athens,
2005.
Papachristodoulou 1972.
Ch. Papachristodoulou. πÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘.
∞fi ÙÔ˘˜ ¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÔ‡˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜ ¤ˆ˜ ÙËÓ
∂Óۈ̿وÛË Ù˘ ¢ˆ‰ÂηӋÛÔ˘ (1948).
Athens, 1972.
Papachristodoulou 1989.
I. Papachristodoulou. √È ·Ú¯·›ÔÈ ÚԉȷÎÔ›
¢‹ÌÔÈ. πÛÙÔÚÈ΋ ÂÈÛÎfiËÛË–∏ π·Ï˘Û›·. μÈ‚Ï.
Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 110. Athens, 1989.
Papadaki-Oekland 2009. S. PapadakiOekland. Byzantine Illuminated Manuscripts
of the Book of Job, Athens 2009.
Papadeli-Marconi 2009. G. PapadeliMarconi. “∏ ÚÔı‹ÎË ÛÙÔ ªÔ˘Û›Ô
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌÔ‡ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.”
πlissia 4 (2009): 66–75.
Papadopoulos 2011. G. Papadopoulos. A
seismic history of Crete. The Hellenic Arc and
trench. Athens, 2011.
Papadopoulos-Kerameus 1902. A.
Papadopoulos-Kerameus. “∞ıËÓ·˚ο ÂÎ
ÙÔ˘ πμ’ Î·È π°’ ·ÈÒÓÔ˜ (Û˘Ó¤¯ÂÈ·).” AÚÌÔÓ›· 3
(1902): 273–93.
Papadopoulos-Kerameus 1909. A.
Papadopoulos-Kerameus. “™˘ÓÔ‰Èο
ÁÚ¿ÌÌ·Ù· πˆ¿ÓÓÔ˘ ÙÔ˘ ∞Ôη‡ÎÔ˘.”
μ˘˙·ÓÙ›˜ 1 (1909): 19–20.
Papadopoulou 1989. μ. Papadopoulou. “8Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt
44 (1989): Chronika, 280–94.
| 287 |
Papadopoulou 1992. μ. Papadopoulou.
“¡¤· AÚ¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ÛÙÔȯ›· ÁÈ· ÙËÓ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ fiÏË Ù˘ ÕÚÙ·˜.” In Chrysos
1992, 375–400.
Papadopoulou 1997. B. Papadopoulou,
“Fortifications of Rogoi, Greece.” In
Thessalonike 1997, 102–3.
Papadopoulou 2002. B. ¡. Papadopoulou.
∏ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÕÚÙ· Î·È Ù· ÌÓËÌ›· Ù˘. Athens,
2002.
Papadopoulou 2004. B. Papadopoulou.
“∂Èه̂ȷ ·Ú¿ÛÙ·ÛË ÛÙÔ Ó·fi Ù˘
¶·Ó·Á›·˜ ¶·ÚËÁÔÚ‹ÙÈÛÛ·˜ ÛÙËÓ ÕÚÙ·.”
DChAE 25 (2004): 141–54.
Papadopoulou 2005. B. Papadopoulou.
“∏ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÌÔÓ‹ ¶·Ó·Á›·˜ ¶ÂÚȂϤÙÔ˘.
™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙË ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ÕÚÙ·˜.” DChAE 26 (2005):
283–302.
Papadopoulou 2007a. B. Papadopoulou.
“ÕÚÙ·, √È ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ Ù˘
ÌÔÓ‹˜ ∫¿Ùˆ ¶·Ó·ÁÈ¿˜.” μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ 27
(2007): 369–96.
Papadopoulou 2007b. B. Papadopoulou.
“μ·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ∞ÏΛۈÓÔ˜. ∏ ·Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋
¤Ú¢ӷ ÙˆÓ ÙÂÏÂ˘Ù·›ˆÓ ÂÙÒÓ.” In Zachos
2007, vol. 1, 609–35.
Papadopoulou 2008. B. Papadopoulou. “ΔÔ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi Ù¤ÌÏÔ Ù˘ ∞Á›·˜ £ÂÔ‰ÒÚ·˜ ÛÙËÓ
ÕÚÙ·.” DChAE 29 (2008): 233–46.
Papadopoulou 2012. B. Papadopoulou.
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ◊ÂÈÚÔ˜, 4Ô˜–7Ô˜ ·È. ∏
Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›· Ù˘ ÁÏ˘ÙÈ΋˜. Ph.D. dissertation.
Ioannina, 2012.
Papadopoulou 2013. B. Papadopoulou.
“ÕÚÙ·. ΔÔ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi Ù¤ÌÏÔ Ù˘
μÏ·¯¤ÚÓ·˜.” In Essays in honor of Professor
P. L. Vocotopoulos (in press).
Papadopoulou and Karamperidi 2008. Δ·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ªÓËÌ›· Ù˘ ∏›ÚÔ˘, edited by B.
N. Papadopoulou and A. Karamperidi.
πoannina, 2008.
Papadopoulou and Konstantaki 2007. B.
Papadopoulou and A. Konstantaki.
“∞Ó¿ÁÏ˘Ê· ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈο ̤ÏË ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜ μ
(∞ÏΛۈÓÔ˜). ¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ηÈ
Û˘ÌÂÚ¿ÛÌ·Ù·.” In Zachos 2007, vol. 1,
637–57.
Papadopoulou and Tsiara 2008. B.
Papadopoulou and A. Tsiara. ∂ÈÎfiÓ˜ Ù˘
ÕÚÙ·˜, ∏ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÛÙËÓ
ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ Ù˘ ÕÚÙ·˜ ηٿ ÙÔ˘˜ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡˜ ηÈ
ÌÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜. Arta, 2008.
Papadopoulou and Tsouris 1993. μ.
Papadopoulou and K. Tsouris. “Late
Byzantine ceramics from Arta. Some
examples.” In La ceramica nel mondo
bizantino tra XI e XV secolo e i suoi rapporti
con l’Italia, ∞tti del Seminario. Certosa di
Pontignano. Sien· 11–13 marzo 1991, edited
by S. Gelichi, 241–61. Quaderni del
dipartimento di archeologia e storia delle
arti. Sezione archeologica. Università di
Siena, 34. Florence, 1993.
Papalexandrou 1998. A. Papalexandrou. The
Church of the Virgin of Scripou: Architecture,
Sculpture and Inscriptions in Ninth-century
Byzantium. Princeton, N.J., 1998.
Papalexandrou 2003. A. Papalexandrou.
“Memory Tattered and Torn: Spolia in the
Heartland of Byzantine Hellenism.” In
Archaeologies of Memory, edited by R. M.
Van Dyke and S. E. Alcock, 56–80. Oxford,
2003.
Papamastorakis 1991. T. Papamastorakis.
“ŒÓ· ÂÈηÛÙÈÎfi ÂÁÎÒÌÈÔ ÙÔ˘ ªÈ¯·‹Ï ∏’
¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁÔ˘: √È Â͈ÙÂÚÈΤ˜ ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜
ÛÙÔ Î·ıÔÏÈÎfi Ù˘ ÌÔÓ‹˜ Ù˘ ª·˘ÚÈÒÙÈÛÛ·˜
ÛÙËÓ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿.” DChAE 15 (1989–90):
221–38.
Papamastorakis 1992. T. Papamastorakis.
“ÕÁÈÔ˜ ¢ËÌ‹ÙÚÈÔ˜ ÙÔ˘ ∫·ÙÛÔ‡ÚË: ÙÔ
ÂÈÎÔÓÔÁÚ·ÊÈÎfi ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ· ÙÔ˘ ÙÚÔ‡ÏÏÔ˘.”
In Chrysos 1992, 419–54.
| 288 |
Papamastorakis 1996–97. T.
Papamastorakis. “∂Èه̂Ș ·Ú·ÛÙ¿ÛÂȘ
ηٿ ÙË Ì¤ÛË Î·È ‡ÛÙÂÚË ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” DCh∞∂ 19 (1996–97): 285–304.
Papamastorakis 2001. T. Papamastorakis. √
‰È¿ÎÔÛÌÔ˜ ÙÔ˘ ÙÚÔ‡ÏÏÔ˘ ÙˆÓ Ó·ÒÓ Ù˘
¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁÂÈ·˜ ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘ (1261–1453) ÛÙË
μ·ÏηÓÈ΋ ¯ÂÚÛfiÓËÛÔ Î·È ÙËÓ ∫‡ÚÔ. μÈ‚Ï.
Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 213. Athens, 2001.
Papamastorakis 2003. T. Papamastorakis.
“∏ ·ÊÈÂڈ̷ÙÈ΋ ÂÈÁÚ·Ê‹ ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡ Ù˘
¶·Ó·Á›·˜ ™ÎÔ˘Ù·ÚÈÒÙÈÛÛ·˜ ∞ηٷ̷¯‹ÙÔ˘
(∫Ô˘ÌÂÏ›‰È΢) ÛÙËÓ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿.” In
§·ÌˉÒÓ. ∞ÊȤڈ̷ ÛÙË ÌÓ‹ÌË Ù˘ ¡ÙԇϷ˜
ªÔ˘Ú›ÎË, edited by M. Aspra-Vardavaki,
vol. 2, 597–608. ∞thens, 2003.
Papamastorakis 2012. T. Papamastorakis.
“Myzithras of the Byzantines/ Mistra to
Byzantinists.” In Kiousopoulou 2012,
277–96.
Papamastorakis 2013. T. Papamastorakis.
“Reflections of Constantinople. The
Iconographic Program of the South Portico
of the Hodegetria Church, Mystras.” In
Viewing the Morea: Land and People in the
Late Medieval Peloponnese, edited by S. E. J.
Gerstel, 371–95. Washington, D.C., 2013.
Papanikola-Bakirtzi 2003. D. PapanikolaBakirtzi. “∂ÚÁ·ÛÙ‹ÚÈ· ÂÊ˘·ÏˆÌ¤Ó˘
ÎÂÚ·ÌÈ΋˜ ÛÙÔ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ÎfiÛÌÔ.” In VIIe
Congrès International sur la Céramique
Médiévale en Méditerranée. Thessaloniki, 11–
16 octobre 1999, edited by Ch. Bakirtzis,
45–66. Athens, 2003.
Papanikola-Bakirtzi and Skordali 1999. D.
Papanikola-Bakirtzi and G. Skordali.
“∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈΤ˜ ∞Ôı‹Î˜ ÛÙÔ ªÔ˘Û›Ô
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌÔ‡.” ªÔ˘Û›Ô
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌÔ‡ 6 (1999); 46–55.
Papanikolaou 2009. P. Papanikolaou. “ΔÔ
«ÊÚ·ÁÎÈÎfi» ÓÔÛÔÎÔÌÂ›Ô Ù˘ ∫ÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘.
πÔÙÈο ÓÔÛÔÎÔÌ›· ÛÙÔ ¯ÒÚÔ Ù˘
∂ÏÏËÓÔÏ·ÙÈÓÈ΋˜ ∞Ó·ÙÔÏ‹˜ (12Ô˜–15Ô˜
·È.).” ¢È·¯ÚÔÓ›· 7 (2009): 1–20.
Papaoikonomou 1908. C. Papaoikonomou.
√ ÔÏÈÔ‡¯Ô˜ ÙÔ˘ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ ÕÁÈÔ˜ ¶¤ÙÚÔ˜,
›ÛÎÔÔ˜ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ Ô ı·˘Ì·ÙÔ˘ÚÁfi˜. Athens,
1908.
Papastathis and ∏ekimoglou 2010. Ch. K.
Papastathis and E. A. ∏ekimoglou. The
Great Fire of Thessaloniki (1917).
Thessalonike, 2010.
Papavassiliou and Archontopoulos 1991. E.
Papavassiliou and Th. Archontopoulos.
“Nouveaux éléments historiques et
archéologiques de Rhodes à travers des
fouilles dans la ville médiévale.” CorsRav 38
(1991): 307–49.
Papavassiliou et al. 2011. E. Papavassiliou,
K. Sarantidis, and E. Papanikolaou. “A
ceramic workshop of the early Byzantine
period on the island of Lipsi in the
Dodekanese (Greece): a preliminary
approach.” In 4th Conference on Late Roman
Coarse Wares, Cooking Wares and Amphorae
in the Mediterranean Archaeology and
Archaeometry. The Mediterranean: A Market
without Frontiers. Thessalonike, 7–10 April
2011. LRCW, 4 (in press).
Papazoglou 1988. F. Papazoglou. Les villes de
Macèdoine à l époque romaine. BCH. Suppl.,
XVI. Athens and Paris, 1988.
Papazotos 1991. Th. Papazotos. “The
Identification of the Church of ‘Profitis
Elias’ in Thessaloniki.” DOP 45 (1991):
121–27.
Papazotos 1994. Th. Papazotos. ∏ μ¤ÚÔÈ· ηÈ
ÔÈ Ó·Ô› Ù˘ (11Ô˜–18Ô˜ ·È.). ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯.
¢ÂÏÙ., 54. Athens, 1994.
Papazotos 1995. Th. Papazotos. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜
ÂÈÎfiÓ˜ Ù˘ μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜. ∞›Ô˜, 15. Athens,
1995.
Papazotos 2003. Th. Papazotos. √‰ÔÈÔÚÈÎfi
ÛÙË μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ Î·È ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ μ¤ÚÔÈ·,
¡·Ô›–Δ¤¯ÓË–πÛÙÔÚ›·. Athens, 2003.
Papazotos et al. 1988. Th. Papazotos, G.
Papazotou, and A. Petkos. “11Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 43 (1988):
Chronika μ2, 407–18.
Pappa 1993. M. Pappa. “¡ÂÔÏÈıÈ΋
ÂÁηٿÛÙ·ÛË ÛÙÔ ¯ÒÚÔ Ù˘ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
ŒÎıÂÛ˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” ∞∂ª£ 7 (1993):
303–10.
Pappa 1997. M. Pappa. “¡ÂÔÏÈıÈ΋
ηÙÔ›ÎËÛË ÛÙË £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.”
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓÈΤˆÓ ¶fiÏȘ 2 (1997): 6–13.
Pariente 1988. A. Pariente. “Rapport sur les
travaux de l’École française en Grèce en
1987. Argos, Terrain Karmoyannis.” BCH
112 (1988): 697–709.
Pariente 1990. A. Pariente. “Chroniques des
fouilles et découvertes archéologiques en
Grèce en 1983. Argos.” BCH 114 (1990):
727–28.
Pariente 2001. A. Pariente. “Travaux de
l’École française en Grèce en 2000. Argos.
3. Terrain Karmoyannis.” BCH 125/2
(2001): 567–80.
Pariente and Piteros 2004–5. A. Pariente
and Ch. Piteros. “Travaux de l’École
française d’Athènes en 2003–2004. Argos.
Le terrain Nannopoulos.” BCH 128–29
(2004–5): 806–27.
Pariente and Piteros 2009. “Travaux de
l’École française d’Athènes en 2008.
Argos. L’agora: terrain Nannopoulos.” BCH
133 (2009): 581–95.
Pariente and Touchais 1998. Argos et
l’Argolide. Topographie et urbanisme. Actes de
la Table Ronde internationale. Athènes –
Argos, 28/4–1/5/1990, edited by A. Pariente
and G. Touchais. Recherches francohelléniques, 3. Nauplion and Athens, 1998.
Pariente et al. 1998. A. Pariente, M. Pierart,
and J.-P. Thalmann. “Les recherches sur
l’agora d’Argos: résultats et perspectives.”
In Pariente and Touchais 1998, 211–31.
Paris 2009. Le Mont Athos et l’Empire byzantin.
Trésors de la Sainte Montagne. Exh. cat.
Paris, 2009.
Paris 2011. Au royaume d’Alexandre le Grand –
La Macédoine antique. Exh. cat. Paris, 2011.
Parsons 1936. A. W. Parsons. “A Roman
Water-Mill in the Athenean Agora.”
Hesperia 5 (1936): 70–90.
Patlagean 1984. E. Patlagean. “Les débuts
d’une aristocratie byzantine et le
témoignage de l’historiographie: système
des noms et liens de parenté aux IXe–Xe
siècle.” In The Byzantine Aristocracy, IX to XIII
Centuries, edited by M. Angold, 23–43.
BAR. Int. Ser., 221. Oxford, 1984.
Pausanias 1989. Pausaniae Graeciae
Descriptio, vol. III (Libri IX–X, Indices), edited
by M. H. Rocha-Pereira. Bibliotheca
Scriptorum Graecorum et Romanorum,
Teubneriana. Leipzig 1989.
Pausanias 1990. Pausaniae Graeciae
Descriptio, vol. II (Libri V–VIII), edited by M.
H. Rocha-Pereira. Bibliotheca Scriptorum
Graecorum et Romanorum, Teubneriana.
Leipzig 1990.
Pazaras 1979. Th. Pazaras. “∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ μÂÚÔ›·˜.” ADelt 34
(1979): Chronika μ2, 313–21.
Pazaras 1984. Th. Pazaras. “¢‡Ô
ÙÔȯÔÁÚ·ÊË̤ÓÔÈ ·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÔ› Ù¿ÊÔÈ
·fi ÙË μ¤ÚÔÈ·.” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 24 (1984):
234–45.
Pazaras 1988. Th. Pazaras. ∞Ó¿ÁÏ˘Ê˜
Û·ÚÎÔÊ¿ÁÔÈ Î·È ÂÈÙ¿ÊȘ ϿΘ Ù˘ ª¤Û˘
Î·È ⁄ÛÙÂÚ˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘ ÛÙËÓ
∂ÏÏ¿‰·. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯. ¢ÂÏÙ., 38.
Athens, 1988.
Péchayre 1936. A.-P. Péchayre.
“L’archevêché d’Ochrida de 1394 à 1767.”
Échos d’Orient 35 (1936): 183–204.
Pelekanides 1955. S. Pelekanides. “¡¤·È
¤ÚÂ˘Ó·È ÂȘ ÙËÓ ∞Á›·Ó ™ÔÊ›·Ó £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢
Î·È Ë ·ÔηٿÛÙ·ÛȘ Ù˘ ·Ú¯·›·˜ ·˘Ù‹˜
ÌÔÚÊ‹˜.” In ¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ ÙÔ˘ £’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË,
12–19 ∞ÚÈÏ›Ô˘ 1953, edited by S.
Kyriakidis, A. Xyngopoulos, and P. Zepos,
398–407. Athens, 1955.
Pelekanides 1966. S. Pelekanides.
“∞Ó·Ûηʷ› √ÎÙ·ÁÒÓÔ˘ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” P∞∂
(1966): 47–58.
Pelekanides 1973. S. Pelekanides.
∫·ÏÏȤÚÁ˘, fiÏ˘ £ÂÙÙ·Ï›·˜ ¿ÚÈÛÙÔ˜
˙ˆÁÚ¿ÊÔ˜. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù.,
75. Athens, 1973.
Pelekanides 1978a. S. Pelekanides,
“Kastoria.” RbK 3 (1978): 1190–1224.
Pelekanides 1978b. S. Pelekanides.
“∞Ó·Ûηʋ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ.” P∞∂ (1978):
67–72.
Pelekanides 1980. S. Pelekanides.
“™˘ÌÂÚ¿ÛÌ·Ù· ·fi ÙËÓ ·Ó·Ûηʋ ÙÔ˘
√ÎÙ·ÁÒÓÔ˘ ÙˆÓ ºÈÏ›ˆÓ Û¯ÂÙÈο Ì ٷ
ÌÓËÌ›· Î·È ÙËÓ ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘ fiÏ˘.” In
Kavala and region, 149–58.
Pelekanides and Chatzidakes 1985. S.
Pelekanides and M. Chatzidakes. Kastoria.
Byzantine Art in Greece, Mosaics, Wall
Paintings. Athens, 1985.
Pelekanidou 1980. E. Pelekanidou. “∏ ηٿ
ÙËÓ ·Ú¿‰ÔÛË Ê˘Ï·Î‹ ÙÔ˘ ∞ÔÛÙfiÏÔ˘
¶·‡ÏÔ˘ ÛÙÔ˘˜ ºÈÏ›Ô˘˜.” In Kavala and
region, 427–35.
Pelekanidou and Mentzos 1990. E.
Pelekanidou and A. Mentzos. “√ÎÙ¿ÁˆÓÔ
ºÈÏ›ˆÓ, ÚÒÙ· Û˘ÌÂÚ¿ÛÌ·Ù· ÌÂÙ¿ ÙȘ
ÓÂfiÙÂÚ˜ ¤Ú¢Ó˜.” In ªÓ‹ÌË ¢. §·˙·Ú›‰Ë.
¶fiÏË Î·È ÃÒÚ· ÛÙËÓ ·Ú¯·›· ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· ηÈ
£Ú¿ÎË. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ.
∫·‚¿Ï·, 9–11/5/1986, 597–607. Recherches
franco-helléniques, 1. Thessalonike, 1990.
Penna 1996. V. Penna. “∏ ˙ˆ‹ ÛÙȘ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ fiÏÂȘ Ù˘ ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓ‹ÛÔ˘: ∏
ÓÔÌÈÛÌ·ÙÈ΋ Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›· (8Ô˜–12Ô˜ ·È. Ì.Ã.).”
In ªÓ‹ÌË Martin Jessop Price, edited by A. P.
Tzamalis, 195–264. Athens, 1996.
Penna 2002. V. Penna. “Numismatic
Circulation in Corinth from 976 to 1204.”
In Laiou 2002, vol. 2, 655–58.
Penna 2008. V. Penna. “¡ÔÌ›ÛÌ·Ù· ·fi ÙÔ
¯ÒÚÔ Ù˘ ‚fiÚÂÈ·˜ ¤ÎÙ·Û˘
ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ªÔ˘Û›Ԣ ∏Ú·ÎÏ›Ԣ.”
In Ioannidou-Karetsou 2008, 205–11.
Pennas 1980. Ch. Pennas.
“¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈΤ˜ ٷʤ˜ ÛÙÔ˘˜
ºÈÏ›Ô˘˜.” In Kavala and region, 437–44.
Pennas 1986. Ch. A. Pennas. “The basilica of
St. Isidore: New Evidence.” In Chios, edited
by J. Boardman and C. Vaphopoulou, 317–
34. Oxford, 1986.
Petkos 1989. A. Petkos. “ΔÔ ‰›ÎÙ˘Ô
˘‰Ú‡Ûˆ˜ Ù˘ μÂÚÔ›·˜.” ∞∞∞ 22 (1989):
197–210.
Petkos 1993a. A. Petkos. “æËÊȉˆÙ¿ ‰¿Â‰·
μÂÚÔ›·˜ Î·È ÙˆÓ ÂÚÈÔ¯ÒÓ ÂϤÁ¯Ô˘ ηÈ
ÂÈÚÚÔ‹˜ Ù˘.” ¢˘ÙÈÎÔ̷ΉÔÓÈο °Ú¿ÌÌ·Ù· 4
(1993): 30–107.
Petkos 1993b. A. S. Petkos. “¢‡Ô ÎÙÈÚȷο
Û˘ÁÎÚÔÙ‹Ì·Ù· ÙÔ˘ 4Ô˘ Î·È 5Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ· ÛÙË
μ¤ÚÔÈ·.” ∞∂ª£ 7 (1993): 97–109.
Petkos 1993–94. A. S. Petkos. “ΔÔ „ËÊȉˆÙfi
§Â˘Î·‰›ˆÓ ¡·Ô‡Û˘ Ì Ù¯ÓÈ΋ Ì·‡ÚÔ¿ÛÚÔ Î·È Ù· Ôχ¯ÚˆÌ· „ËÊȉˆÙ¿ Ù˘
μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜.” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 29 (1993–94):
262–74.
Petkos 1997. A. Petkos. “Δ· Ù›¯Ë Ù˘
μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜ (ÚÔ·Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋ ÂÈÛÎfiËÛË).” In
ªÓ‹ÌË ª·ÓfiÏË ∞Ó‰ÚfiÓÈÎÔ˘, 263–76.
ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 6. Thessalonike,
1997.
Petkos 2001. A. S. Petkos. Δ· ÌÓËÌ›· Ù˘
μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜ (4Ô˜–19Ô˜ ·ÈÒÓ·˜). Athens, 2001.
Petkos 2004. A. Petkos. “Veroia. Une ville
avec une longue histoire et civilization.” In
Avignon 2004, 34–43.
Petkos 2007. A. Petkos. “√ ¡ÔÌfi˜ ∏Ì·ı›·˜
ηٿ ÙËÓ ¶ÚÒÈÌË μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” In
∏Ì·ı›·˜ ªÂÏÂÙ‹Ì·Ù·, 25–35. Berroia, 2007.
Petkos and Kaltapanidou-Pyrovetsi 2008.
A. Petkos and V. Kaltapanidou-Pyrovetsi.
“∞Ó¿‰ÂÈÍË ∫¿ÛÙÚÔ˘ ™ÂÚ‚›ˆÓ.” ∞∂ª£ 22
(2008): 71–78.
Petkos and Kaltapanidou-Pyrovetsi 2009.
A. Petkos and V. Kaltapanidou-Pyrovetsi.
™¤Ú‚È·, ÌÈ· ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ fiÏË-οÛÙÚÔ :
‰È·‰ÚÔ̤˜ ÛÙÔ ¯ÒÚÔ Î·È ÛÙÔ ¯ÚfiÓÔ /Servia,
a Byzantine fortified city. Journeys in space
and time. Berroia, 2009.
Petkos and Karagianni 2004a. A. Petkos
and F. Karagianni. “Δ· ·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο
Â˘Ú‹Ì·Ù· Ù˘ ¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋˜
ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘.” In ∂Ú·ÙÂÈÓ‹ ∏Ì·ı›·, 134–71.
Berroia, 2004.
Petkos and Karagianni 2004b. A. Petkos
and F. Karagianni. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈΤ˜ ¤Ú¢Ó˜
ÛÙ· ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ÎÔÈÌËÙ‹ÚÈ· Ù˘ μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜.”
∞∂ª£ 18 (2004): 509–18.
Petkos and Karagianni 2007. A. S. Petkos
and F. P. Karagianni. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ªÔ˘Û›Ô
μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜. μeroia, 2007.
Petkos et al. 2009. A. Petkos, V.
Kaltapanidou-Pyrovetsi, and E.
Christophoridou. ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi˜ ¯ÒÚÔ˜ ∞Á›Ô˘
¶·Ù·›Ô˘ μÂÚÔ›·˜. Berroia, 2009.
Petridis 2010. P. Petridis. “ƒˆÌ·˚ο ηÈ
ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ÂÚÁ·ÛÙ‹ÚÈ· ÎÂÚ·ÌÈ΋˜ ÛÙÔÓ
ÂÏÏ·‰ÈÎfi ¯ÒÚÔ.” In ∫ÂÚ·ÌÈ΋ Ù˘ ⁄ÛÙÂÚ˘
∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ·˜ ·fi ÙÔÓ ÂÏÏ·‰ÈÎfi ¯ÒÚÔ (3Ô˜–7Ô˜
·È. Ì.Ã.), edited by D. Papanikola-Bakirtzi
and D. ∫ousoulakou, 81–96. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘
∞Ú¯. πÓÛÙÈÙ. ª·Î‰ÔÓÈÎÒÓ Î·È £Ú·ÎÈÎÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ, ·Ú. 8. Thessalonike, 2010.
Petsas 1966. Ph. M. Petsas. “Veria.” In
Enciclopedia dell’arte antica, classica e
orientale 7 (1966): 1135–36.
Petsas et al. 1965. Ph. Petsas, M.
Andronikos, and R. J. Rodden.
“∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ˜ Î·È ÌÓËÌ›· ¢˘Ù.
ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·˜.” ADelt 20 (1965): Chronika
μ3, 423–42.
Petsas et al. 1968. Ph. Petsas, G. Bakalakis,
A. K. Andreiomenou, Ch. Koukouli, and
École Française d’Athènes. “M·Î‰ÔÓ›·.”
ADelt 23 (1968): Chronika μ2, 325–63.
PG. Patrologiae Cursus Completus. Seriae
Graecae.
Philadelpheus 1913. A. Philadelpheus. “∞È ÂÓ
¡ÈÎÔfiÏÂÈ ·Ó·Ûηʷ›.” P∞∂ (1913): 83–112.
Philadelpheus 1918. A. Philadelpheus.
“AÚ¯·›· ¤·˘ÏȘ ÌÂÙ¿ Ó˘ÌÊ·›Ô˘ ÂÓ §Â¯·›ˆ
Ù˘ ∫ÔÚÈÓı›·˜.” ∞Delt 4 (1918): 125–35.
Philadelpheus 1926. A. Philadelpheus.
“∞Ó·Ûηʷ› ¡ÈÎÔfiψ˜.” P∞∂ (1926):
128–30.
Philadelpheus 1927. A. Philadelpheus.
∞Ó·Ûηʷ› ¡ÈÎÔfiψ˜, 1921–1926.
ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfiÓ ÿ‰Ú˘Ì· ∞ÏΛۈÓÔ˜.” DCh∞∂ 4
(1927): 46–61.
Philemonos-Tsopotou 2004. M. PhilemonosTsopotou. ∏ ∂ÏÏËÓÈÛÙÈ΋ √¯‡ÚˆÛË Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘.
¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ AÚ¯. ¢ÂÏÙ., 86. Athens, 2004.
Philippa-Apostolou 1982. M. PhilippaApostolou. “¶¿ÚÔ˜.” In ∂ÏÏËÓÈ΋
¶·Ú·‰ÔÛȷ΋ ∞Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋, vol. 2:
∫˘ÎÏ¿‰Â˜, 111–44. Athens, 1982.
Philippa-Touchais 2004–2005. A. PhilippaTouchais. “Chroniques des fouilles et
découvertes archéologiques en Grèce en
2003 et 2004. Argos.” BCH 128–29
(2004–5): 1315–18.
Philippa-Touchais et al. 2000. A. PhilippaTouchais, S. Huber, and G. Touchais.
“Chroniques des fouilles et découvertes
archéologiques en Grèce en 1999. Argos.”
BCH 124 (2000): 799–801.
Phourikis 1928. P. Phourikis. “ªÈÎÚ¿
Û˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÂȘ ÙËÓ ∏ÂÈÚˆÙÈÎ‹Ó πÛÙÔÚ›·Ó.
¡ÈÎfiÔÏȘ, ¶Ú¤‚Â˙·.” ∏ÂÈÚˆÙÈο ÃÚÔÓÈο 3
(1928): 117–59.
Picenardi 1900. G. S. Picenardi. Itinéraire d’un
chevalier de S. Jean de Jerusalem dans l’île de
Rhodes. Lille, 1900.
Piérart 2004–5. M. Piérart. “Travaux de
l’École française d’Athènes en 2003–2004.
Argos. L’Agora.” BCH 128–29 (2004–5):
828–33.
Piérart 2006. M. Piérart. “Travaux de l’École
française d’Athènes en 2003–2004. Argos.
L’Agora.” BCH 130 (2006): 708–13.
Piérart and Thalmann 1980. M. Piérart and
J.-P. Thalmann. “Céramique romaine et
médiévale.” In Études Argiennes, 459–82.
BCH. Suppl., 6. Paris, 1980.
Piérart and Touchais 1996. M. Piérart and G.
Touchais. Argos. Une ville grecque de 6000
ans. Paris, 1996.
Pietri 1984. C. Pietri. “La géographie de
l’Illyricum ecclésiastique et ses relations
avec l’Église de Rome (Ve–VIe siècles).” In
Villes et peuplement dans l’Illyricum
protobyzantin. Actes du colloque organisé par
l’École française de Rome. Rome, 12–14 mai
1982, 21–62. Collection de l’École française
de Rome, 77. Rome, 1984.
Pitarakis 2012. B. Pitarakis. “Daily Life at the
Marketplace in Late Antiquity and
Byzantium.” In Trade and Markets in
Byzantium, edited by C. Morrisson, 399–
426. Washington, D.C., 2012.
Piteros 1988. Ch. Piteros. “ΔÔÔÁÚ·ÊÈΤ˜
·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙËÓ ·ÎÚfiÔÏË Ù˘
∫·‰Ì›·˜.” ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∞’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ
μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ. £‹‚·, 10–14
™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1986, edited by A. P. Bekiaris =
∂∂μª 1/1 (1988): 89–112.
Piteros 2003. Ch. I. Piteros. “∏ Ì˘ÎËÓ·˚΋
·ÎÚfiÔÏË Ù˘ §¿ÚÈÛ·˜ ÙÔ˘ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜.” In The
Periphery of the Mycenaean World. 2nd
International Interdisciplinary Colloquium, 26–
30 September, Lamia 1999. Proceedings,
edited by N. Kyparissi-Apostolika and M.
Papakonstantinou, 369–96. Athens, 2003.
Pitt 2012. R. Pitt. “Chroniques des fouilles en
ligne.” BCH (2012) (in press).
Platon 1937. N. Platon. “ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ÂÈÁÚ·Ê‹
ÂÎ Δ·Ó¿ÁÚ·˜.” ∞∂ 76 (1937): 655–67.
Platon 1947a. N. Platon. “¢˘Ô ÔÓfiÌ·Ù·
·Ó‡·ÚÎÙˆÓ ÎÚËÙÈÎÒÓ fiψÓ.” ∫Chron 1
(1947): 14–26.
Platon 1947b. N. Platon. “Δ· Ù›¯Ë ÙÔ˘
ÿӉ·ÎÔ˜ ηٿ ÙËÓ ‰Â˘Ù¤Ú·Ó μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹Ó
ÂÚ›Ô‰ÔÓ.” ∫Chron 1 (1947): 239–48.
Platon 1950. N. Platon. “¶¿ÏÈÓ ÂÚ›
ÙˆÓ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ÙÂȯÒÓ ÙÔ˘ ÿӉ·Î·.”
∫Chron 4 (1950): 353–60.
Platon 1952. N. Platon. “¡¤· ÛÙÔȯ›· ‰È¿ ÙËÓ
ÌÂϤÙËÓ ÙˆÓ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ÙÂȯÒÓ ÙÔ˘
ÿӉ·ÎÔ˜.” ∫Chron 6 (1952): 439–59.
Portelanos and Rouvelas 2000–2001. A.
Portelanos and I. Rouvelas. ªÂϤÙË
·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋˜ ÙÂÎÌËÚ›ˆÛ˘ ∫¿ÛÙÚÔ˘ §¿ÚÈÛ·˜
ÕÚÁÔ˘˜. Argos, 2000–2001.
Poulou-Papadimitriou 2002. N. PoulouPapadimitriou. “μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ fiÚ˜. ∏
ÂÚ›ÙˆÛË Ù˘ ªÂÛÛ‹Ó˘ Î·È Ù˘
∂χıÂÚÓ·˜.” In Themelis and Konti 2002,
125–36.
Poulou-Papadimitriou 2005. N. PoulouPapadimitriou. “Les plaques-boucles
byzantines de l’île de Crète (fin VIe–IXe
siècle).” In ªélanges Jean-Pierre Sodini = Δª
15 (2005): 687–704
Poulou-Papadimitriou 2008. N. PoulouPapadimitriou. “™ÙÈÁ̤˜ ·fi ÙËÓ ÈÛÙÔÚ›·
ÙÔ˘ ∏Ú·ÎÏ›Ԣ. ∞fi ÙËÓ ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÔ¯‹ ¤ˆ˜ ÙËÓ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô Ù˘ ÔıˆÌ·ÓÈ΋˜
΢ÚÈ·Ú¯›·˜ (7Ô˜–19Ô˜ ·È.).” In IoannidouKaretsou 2008, 149–201.
Pozza and Ravegnani 1993. I trattati con
Bisanzio 992–1198, edited by M. Pozza and
G. Ravegnani. Pacta Veneta, 4. Venice,
1993.
Pratsch 2005. T. Pratsch. “Zur Herkunft des
Niketas Magistros (um 870–frühestens
946/947) aus Lakonien.” Byzantion 75
(2005): 501–6.
Prokopios 1961. ¶ÚÔÎÔ›Ô˘ ∫·ÈÛ·Ú¤ˆ˜, ¶ÂÚÈ̀
ÎÙÈÛÌ¿ÙˆÓ, edited by G. Downey. London,
1961.
Prokopios 1964. Procopius of Caesarea. De
Aedificiis, edited by J. Haury. Bibliotheca
Scriptorum Graecorum et Romanorum
Teubneriana. Leipzig, 1913 (reprinted with
addenda by G. Wirth. Leipzig, 1964).
Provost 2002. S. Provost. “Une réfection des
remparts de Philippes sous Michel VII
Doukas.” REB 61 (2002): 167–81.
Psarri 2007. G. Psarri. “¡ÂfiÙÂÚ· ÛÙÔȯ›· ·fi
ÙËÓ ·Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋ ¤Ú¢ӷ ·ÓÒÓ˘ÌÔ˘
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ Ó·Ô‡ ÛÙËÓ Ô‰fi £ËÛ¤ˆ˜ ÛÙË
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈ΋ fiÏË Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘.” In City of
Rhodes 2007, vol. I, 467–72. Athens, 2007.
Purcell 1987. N. Purcell. “The Nicopolitan
Synoecism and Roman Urban Policy.” In
Chrysos 1987, 71–90.
Radoj či č 1965. S. Radojčič. “Une école de
peinture de la deuxième moitié du XVe
siècle. Contribution à l’histoire de l’art
chrétien des Balkans sous la domination
des Turcs.” Matica Srpska 1 (1965): 60–104.
Raepsaet 1993. G. Raepsaet. “Le diolkos de
l’Isthme à Corinthe: son tracé, son
fonctionnement.” BCH 117 (1993): 233–61.
Ragia 2011. E. Ragia. “The geography of the
provincial administration of the Byzantine
empire (ca. 600–1200): I. 2. Apothekai of
the Balkans and of the islands of the
Aegean Sea (7th–8th c.).” μSl 69 (2011):
86–113.
Rallis and Potlis 1855. G. Rallis and M. Potlis.
Σύνταγμα τῶν Θείων καὶ Ἱερῶν Κανόνων,
vol. 5. Athens, 1855.
Rapp 1997. C. Rapp. “Ritual brotherhood in
Byzantium.” Traditio 52 (1997): 285–326.
Rautman 1989. M. L. Rautman. “Patrons
and Buildings in Late Byzantine
Thessaloniki.” JÖB 39 (1989): 295–315.
RbK. Reallexikon zur Byzantinischen Kunst.
RE. Paulys Realencyklopädie der classischen
Altertumswissenschaft.
REB. Revue des études byzantines.
Reynolds, Bonifay, and Cau 2011. P.
Reynolds, M. Bonifay, and M. A. Cau. “Key
contexts for the dating of late Roman
Mediterranean fine wares: a preliminary
review and ‘seriation’.” In LRFW1. Late
Roman Fine Wares. Solving problems of
typology and chronology. A review of the
evidence, debate and new contexts, edited by
M. A. Cau, P. Reynolds, and M. Bonifay,
15–32. Roman and Late Antique
Mediterranean Pottery, 1. Oxford, 2011.
Rhoby 2007. A. Rhoby. “Stadtlob und
Stadtkritik in der byzantinischen Literatur.”
In Byzantinische Sprachkunst. Studien zur
byzantinischen Literatur gewidmet Wolfram
Hörandner zum 65. Geburtstag, edited by M.
Hinterberger and E. Schiffer, 277–95.
Byzantinisches Archiv, 20. Berlin and New
York, 2007.
Rhodes, 2400 years. ƒfi‰Ô˜, 2400 ¯ÚfiÓÈ·. ∏
fiÏË Ù˘ ƒfi‰Ô˘ ·fi ÙËÓ ›‰Ú˘Û‹ Ù˘ ̤¯ÚÈ ÙËÓ
ηٿÏË„Ë ·fi ÙÔ˘˜ ΔÔ‡ÚÎÔ˘˜ (1523).
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ.
2 vols. Athens, 2000.
Rife et al. 2007. J. Rife, R. Dunn, M. Moore
Morison, D. Ubelaker, A. Barbet, and F.
Monier. “Life and Death at a Port in
Roman Greece. The Kenchreai Cemetery
Project 2002–2006.” Hesperia 76 (2007):
143–81.
Riley 1979. J. A. Riley. “The coarse pottery
from Berenice.” In Excavations at Sidi
Khrebish, Benghazi (Berenice), edited by J. A.
Lloyd, vol. II, 91–467. Supplement to Libya
Antiqua, V. Tripoli, n.d. (1979 on Arabic
cover, issued 1982).
RivArchCr. Rivista di Archeologia Cristiana.
Rizakis and Marchetti 1995. Y. Rizakis and
P. Marchetti. “Recherches sur les mythes
et la topographie d’Argos. IV. L’agora
revisitée.” BCH 119 (1995): 437–72.
Robinson 1962. H. S. Robinson. “Excavations
at Corinth, 1960.” Hesperia 31 (1962):
96–133.
Robinson 1964. H. S. Robinson. “American
Excavations at Corinth.” ∞Delt 19 (1964):
Chronika μ1, 100–102.
Robinson 1967. H. S. Robinson. “Church of
Haghia Paraskevi, Ancient Corinth.” ∞Delt
22 (1967): Chronika μ1, 218–19.
Robinson 1976a. H. S. Robinson.
“Excavations at Corinth: Temple Hill.”
Hesperia 45 (1976): 203–39.
Robinson 1976b. H. S. Robinson. “Temple
Hill, Corinth.” In Neue Forschungen in
Griechischen Heiligtümern, edited by U.
Jantzen, 239–60. Tübingen, 1976.
Robinson 2011. B. Robinson. Histories of
Peirene. A Corinthian Fountain in Three
Millennia. Ancient art and architecture in
context, 2. Princeton, N.J., 2011.
Robinson and Weinberg 1960. H. S.
Robinson and S. S. Weinberg. “Excavations
at Corinth, 1959.” Hesperia 29 (1960):
225–53.
Roebuck 1951. C. Roebuck. The Asklepieion
and Lerna. Corinth, XIV. Princeton, N.J.,
1951.
Roger 1938. J. Roger. “L’enceinte basse de
Philippes.” BCH 62 (1938): 21–41.
Romiopoulou 1974. K. Romiopoulou. “Un
nouveau miliaire de la Via Egnatia.” BCH 98
(1974): 813–16.
Romiopoulou and Touratsoglou 1974. A.
Romiopoulou and I. Touratsoglou. “∂Î Ù˘
·Ú¯·›·˜ μÂÚÔ›·˜.” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 14 (1974):
163–74.
Rothaus 1995. R. Rothaus. “Lechaion,
Western Port of Corinth: A preliminary
Archaeology and History.” OJA 14 (1995):
293–305.
Rothaus 2000. R. Rothaus. Corinth, the First
City of Greece: An Urban History of Late
Antique Cult and Religion. Religions in the
Graeco-Roman world, 139. Leiden, Boston,
and Cologne 2000.
Runciman 1929. S. Runciman. The Emperor
Romanus Lecapenus and His Reign: A Study of
Tenth-Century Byzantium. Cambridge, 1929.
Runciman 1980. St. Runciman. Mistra,
Byzantine Capital of the Peloponnese.
London, 1980.
Saint-Guillain 2010. G. Saint-Guillain. “Abus
de pouvoir ou gouvernance de proximité?
Administrateurs vénitiens et administrés à
travers l’exemple de la prise d’Argos par les
Ottomans en 1397.” In Maltezou and
Panopoulou 2010, 81–119.
Sakellariou 1997. Epirus, 4000 Years of Greek
History and Civilization, edited by M. B.
Sakellariou. Athens, 1997.
Samartzidou 1990. S. Samartzidou. “∂ÁÓ·Ù›·
Ô‰fi˜ ·fi ÙÔ˘˜ ºÈÏ›Ô˘˜ ÛÙË ¡Â¿ÔÏË.”
In ªÓ‹ÌË ¢. §·˙·Ú›‰Ë, ¶fiÏË Î·È ÃÒÚ· ÛÙËÓ
·Ú¯·›· ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· Î·È £Ú¿ÎË. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ. ∫·‚¿Ï·
9–11/5/1986, 559–79. Recherches francohelléniques, 1. Thesssalonike, 1990.
Sanders 1987. G. D. R. Sanders. “An
Assemblage of Frankish Pottery at
Corinth.” Hesperia 56 (1987): 159–95.
Sanders 1989. G. D. R. Sanders. “Three
Peloponnesian Churches and their
Importance for the Chronology of late
13th and early 14th Century Pottery in the
Eastern Mediterranean.” In Recherches sur
la céramique byzantine. Actes du colloque
organisé par l’École française d’Athènes et
l’Université de Strasbourg II. Athènes, 8–10
avril 1987, edited by V. Déroche and J.-M.
| 289 |
Spieser, 189–99. BCH. Suppl., 18. Athens,
1989.
Sanders 1999a. G. D. R. Sanders. “A Late
Roman Bath at Corinth. Excavations in the
Panayia Field, 1995–1996.” Hesperia 68
(1999): 441–80.
Sanders 1999b. G. D. R. Sanders.
“¶·Ú·ÁˆÁ‹ ÙˆÓ ÂÚÁ·ÛÙËÚ›ˆÓ Ù˘
∫ÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘.” In μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ∂Ê˘·ÏˆÌ¤Ó·
∫ÂÚ·ÌÈο, ∏ Ù¤¯ÓË ÙˆÓ ÂÁ¯·Ú¿ÎÙˆÓ, edited by
D. Papanikola-Bakirtzi, 159–64. Exh. cat.
Athens, 1999.
Sanders 2000. G. D. R. Sanders. “New
Relative and Absolute Chronologies for 9th
to 13th Century Glazed Wares.
Methodology and Social Conclusions.“ In
Byzanz als Raum – Zu Methoden und Inhalten
der historischen Geographie des Östlichen
Mittelmeerraumes, edited by K. Belke, F.
Hild, J. Koder, and P. Soustal, 95–113.
Österr. Ak. der Wiss. Philos.-hist. Klasse.
Denkschr., 283. TIB, 7. Vienna, 2000.
Sanders 2002. G. D. R. Sanders. “Corinth.”
In Laiou 2002, vol. 2, 647–54.
Sanders 2003. G. D. R. Sanders. “Recent
Developments in the Chronology of
Byzantine Corinth.” In Centenary 2003,
385–99.
Sanders 2004. G. D. R. Sanders. “Problems
in Interpreting Rural and Urban Settlement
in Southern Greece, A.D. 365–700.” In
Landscapes of Change: Rural Evolutions in Late
Antiquity and the Early Middle Ages, edited by
N. Christie, 163–81. Aldershot, 2004.
Sanders 2005a. G. D. R. Sanders. “Urban
Corinth, An Introduction.” In Schowalter
and Friesen 2005, 11–24.
Sanders 2005b. G. D. R. Sanders.
“Archaeological Evidence for Early
Christianity and the End of Hellenistic
Religion in Corinth.” In Schowalter and
Friesen 2005, 419–42.
Sanders 2010. G. D. R. Sanders. “∏ ∫fiÚÈÓıÔ˜
ηٿ ÙȘ ‰ÂηÂٛ˜ ·Ì¤Ûˆ˜ ÚÈÓ ÙÔ ÛÂÈÛÌfi
ÙÔ˘ 1858 ˘fi ÙÔ Êˆ˜ Ù˘ ·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈ΋˜
¤Ú¢ӷ˜ Î·È ·Ó·ÛηÊÒÓ ·fi ÙÔ 1959 ˆ˜
Û‹ÌÂÚ·.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∏’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ
¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛÈ·ÎÒÓ ™Ô˘‰ÒÓ. ∫fiÚÈÓıÔ˜, 26–28
™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2008, 57–70. ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο.
¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 29. Athens, 2010.
Sanders and Whitbread 1990. G. D. R.
Sanders and I. K. Whitbread. “Central
Places and Major Roads in the
Peloponnese.” BSA 85 (1990): 333–61.
Saradi 1995. H. Saradi. “The ‘Kallos’ of the
Byzantine City. The development of a
Rhetoric Topos and historic reality.” Gesta
34 (1995): 37–56.
Saradi 2006. H. Saradi. The Byzantine City in
the Sixth Century: Literary Images and
Historical Reality. Athens, 2006.
Saradi 2008. H. Saradi. “Towns and Cities.”
In The Oxford Handbook of Byzantine Studies,
edited by E. Jeffreys, J. Haldon, and R.
Cormack, 317–27. Oxford and New York,
2008.
Saradi 2012. H. Saradi. “The Byzantine Cities
(8th–15th Centuries): Old Approaches and
New Directions.” In Kiousopoulou 2012,
25–45.
Savvides 1987. A. Savvides. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿
ÛÙ·ÛÈ·ÛÙÈο Î·È ·˘ÙÔÓÔÌÈÛÙÈο ÎÈÓ‹Ì·Ù· ÛÙ·
¢ˆ‰ÂοÓËÛ· Î·È ÛÙË ªÈÎÚ¿ ∞Û›·, 1189–1240
Ì.Ã. Athens, 1987.
Savvides 1988a. A. G. C. Savvides. “∏
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ £‹‚·, 996/7–1204 Ì.Ã.”
πÛÙÔÚÈÎÔÁˆÁÚ·ÊÈο 2 (1988): 33–52.
Savvides 1988b. A. Savvides. “Rhodes from
the End of the Gabales Rule to the
Conquest by the Hospitallers, A.D. c.
1250–1309.” B˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi˜ ¢fiÌÔ˜ 2 (1988):
199–232.
Savvides 1991–92. A. G. C. Savvides.
“Nauplion in the Byzantine and Frankish
| 290 |
Periods.” ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο 19 (1991–92):
286–302.
Savvides 1994. A. G. C. Savvides. “Δ·
ÚÔ‚Ï‹Ì·Ù· Û¯ÂÙÈο Ì ÙÔ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi
¡·‡ÏÈÔ.” μ˘˙·ÓÙȷο 14 (1994): 357–74.
Savvides 1995. A. Savvides. ∏ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ƒfi‰Ô˜ Î·È ÔÈ ªÔ˘ÛÔ˘ÏÌ¿ÓÔÈ. ¶ÚÔ‚Ï‹Ì·Ù·
Û¯ÂÙÈο Ì ÙȘ ∞Ú·‚ÈΤ˜ Î·È ÙȘ ΔÔ˘ÚÎÈΤ˜
ÂȉÚÔ̤˜ ηٿ ÙÔ˘ ÓËÛÈÔ‡ ·fi Ù· ̤۷ ÙÔ˘
7Ô˘ ¤ˆ˜ ÙȘ ·Ú¯¤˜ ÙÔ˘ 14Ô˘ ·ÈÒÓ·. 2nd ed.
Athens, 1995.
SBN. Studi Bizantini e Neoellenici.
Schaer 1993. R. Schaer. L’invention des
Musées. Paris, 1993.
Schober 1936. F. Schober. “Nikopolis.” RE
17, vol. 1 (1936): 511–18.
Schowalter and Friesen 2005. D. N.
Schowalter and S. J. Friesen. Urban Religion
in Roman Corinth. Harvard Theological
Studies, 53. Cambridge, Mass., 2005.
Schultz and Barnsley 1901. R. W. Schultz
and H. Barnsley. The Monastery of Saint Luke
of Stiris in Phocis and the Dependent
Monastery of Saint Nicolas in the Fields near
Scripou in Boeotia. London, 1901.
Scranton 1957. R. L. Scranton. Mediaeval
Architecture in the Central Area of Corinth.
Corinth, XVI. Princeton, N.J., 1957.
Scranton et al. 1978. R. L. Scranton, J. W.
Shaw, and L. Ibrahim. Kenchreai, Eastern
Port of Corinth. 1: Topography and
Architecture. Leiden, 1978.
Sdrolia 2003. S. Sdrolia. “∏ ÔÚ›· ÙÔ˘
∞ϤÍÈÔ˘ ∫ÔÌÓËÓÔ‡ ÙÔ 1083 ÛÙË £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·.
Δ· Ó¤· Â˘Ú‹Ì·Ù· ÛÙÔÓ ∫›ÛÛ·‚Ô Î·È ÙÔ
ª·˘ÚÔ‚Ô‡ÓÈ.” ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ŒÚÁÔ
£ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜ Î·È ™ÙÂÚ¿˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰·˜ 1/I (2003):
403–19.
Sdrolia and Androudis 2012. S. Sdrolia and
P. Androudis. “∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈΤ˜ ¤Ú¢Ó˜ ÛÙÔ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi Û˘ÁÎÚfiÙËÌ· Ó·Ô‡ ηÈ
·Ó‰Ô¯Â›Ô˘ ÛÙË ı¤ÛË ‘ÿÓÈ ∫ÔÎÎÒÓ·˜’
ΔÂÌÒÓ.” ∞∂ª£ 2012 (in press).
Setton 1944. K. M. Setton. “Athens in the
late twelfth century. Speculum XIX (1944):
179–207.
Setton 1976. K. M. Setton. The Papacy and
the Levant (1204–1571), vol. 1, The Thirteenth
and Fourteenth Centuries. Memoirs of the
American Philosophical Society, 114.
Philadelphia, 1976.
Sève 1979. M. Sève. “Philippes II. Le Forum.”
BCH 103 (1979): 619–31.
Sève 1985. M. Sève. “Philippes.” BCH 109
(1985): 864–73.
Sève 1990. M. Sève. “Sur la taille des
rayonnages dans les bibliothèques
antiques.” Revue de Philologie 64 (1990):
1–2, 173–79.
Sève 1996. M. Sève. “L’œuvre de l’École
française d’Athènes à Philippes pendant la
décennie 1987–1996.” ∞∂ª£ 10 (1996) μ’:
705–17.
Sgouros 1937. K. Sgouros. πÛÙÔÚ›· Ù˘ Ó‹ÛÔ˘
Ã›Ô˘. Athens, 1937.
Shawcross 2013. T. Shawcross. “A New
Lykourgos for a New Sparta: George
Gemistos Plethon and the Despotate of
Morea.” In Viewing the Morea: Land and
People in the Late Medieval Peloponnese,
edited by S. E. J. Gerstel, 419–52.
Washington, D.C., 2013.
Shelley 1943. J. M. Shelley. “The Christian
Basilica Near the Cenchrean Gate at
Corinth.” Hesperia 12 (1943): 66–89.
Shepard 1995. J. Shepard. “A Marriage too
Far? Maria Lekapena and Peter of Bulgaria.”
In The Empress Theophano: Byzantium and the
West at the Turn of the First Millennium,
edited by A. Davids, 121–49. Cambridge,
1995.
Siganidou et al. 1980. M. Siganidou, M.
Akamati, V. Allamani, and K. Tzanavari.
“π∑’ ∂ÊÔÚ›· ¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ Î·È ∫Ï·ÛÈÎÒÓ
∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 35 (1980): Chronika
μ2, 393–414.
Simatou and Christodoulopoulou 1989–90.
A.-M. Simatou and R. Christodoulopoulou.
“¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙÔÓ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎfi ÔÈÎÈÛÌfi
ÙÔ˘ °ÂڷΛԢ.” DChAE 15 (1989–90): 67–87.
Sinkevic’ 2000. I. Sinkevic’. The Church of St.
Panteleimon at Nerezi: Architecture,
programme, patronage. Spätantike, frühes
Christentum, Byzanz. Reihe B, Studien und
Perspektiven, 6. Wiesbaden, 2000.
Sinos 1987a. S. Sinos. “Beobachtungen zur
Konstruktion des spätbyzantinischen
Palastes von Mystras.” In Erhalten historisch
bedeutsamer Bauwerke. Universität Karlsruhe,
Jahrbuch 1986, 70–87. Berlin 1987.
Sinos 1987b. S. Sinos. “Organisation und
Form des byzantinischen Palastes von
Mystras.” Architectura 17 (1987): 105–28.
Sinos 2005. S. Sinos. “Mistras.” RbK 4
(2005): 380–518.
Sinos 2008. S. Sinos. “∏ ·Ó·ÛًψÛË ÙÔ˘
·Ï·ÙÈÔ‡ ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” In Restoration of
Monuments–Rehabilitation of Historical
Buildings in Peloponnesus, edited by N.
Charkiolakis, vol. I, 122–41. Athens, 2008.
Sinos 2009. The Monuments of Mystras, The
Works of the Committee for the Restoration of
the Monuments of Mystras, edited by S.
Sinos. Athens 2009.
Sinos 2009a. S. Sinos. “ΔÔ ¶·Ï¿ÙÈ.” In Sinos
2009, 337–73.
Sinos 2013. S. Sinos. ∏ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÙÔ˘
ηıÔÏÈÎÔ‡ Ù˘ ªÔÓ‹˜ Ù˘ ¶·ÓÙ¿Ó·ÛÛ·˜ ÙÔ˘
ª˘ÛÙÚ¿. ªÂ Ì›· ÂÓfiÙËÙ· ÁÈ· ÙÔ ÁÏ˘Ùfi
‰È¿ÎÔÛÌÔ ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡ ·fi ÙË °ÂˆÚÁ›· ª·Ú›ÓÔ˘.
Athens, 2013.
Sinos and Marinou 2009. S. Sinos and G.
Marinou. “Δ· Û›ÙÈ· ÙÔ˘ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” In Sinos
2009, 243–335.
Siomkos 2005. N. Siomkos. L’église Saint
Etienne à Kastoria, Étude des différentes
phases du décor peint (Xe–XIVe siècles).
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ΛÌÂÓ· Î·È ÌÂϤٷÈ, 38.
Thessalonike, 2005.
Sisiu 2007. I. Sisiu. “The painting throughout
the 13th century in Saint Stefanos of
Kastoria.” In Nis
̌ and Byzantium, Symposium
V. Nis
̌ , 3–5 June 2006, edited by M. Rakocija,
393–414. The Collection of Scientific
Works, V. Niš, 2007.
Sisiu 2011. I. Sisiu. “√È ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡
ÙˆÓ ∞Á›ˆÓ ΔÚÈÒÓ, ™·ÌˆÓ¿, °Ô˘Ú›· ηÈ
∞‚›‚Ô˘ ÛÙËÓ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿.” In Sur les pas de
Vojislav J. Djuric’, 257–77. Belgrade, 2011.
Skampavias 2004. K. N. Skampavias. ∏ ¡¤·
ªÔÓ‹ Ã›Ô˘. πÛÙÔÚ›· Î·È Δ¤¯ÓË. ∞thens, 2004.
Skedros 1999. J. Skedros. St. Demetrios of
Thessaloniki: Civic Patron and Divine Protector
(4th–7th c. C.E.). Harrisburg, Pa., 1999.
Skedros 2010. J. Skedros. “Civic and
Ecclesiastical Identity in Christian
Thessalonike.” In Nasrallah et al. 2010,
245–61.
Sklavou-Mavroidi 1999. M. SklavouMavroidi. °Ï˘Ù¿ ÙÔ˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ªÔ˘Û›Ԣ
∞ıËÓÒÓ. ∫·Ù¿ÏÔÁÔ˜. Athens, 1999.
Skylitzes 1973. Ioannis Scylitzae synopsis
historiarum, edited by J. Thurn, 3–500.
CFHB. Series Berolinensis, 5. Berlin, 1973.
Slane 2008. K. W. Slane. “The End of the
Sanctuary of Demeter and Kore on
Acrocorinth.” Hesperia 77 (2008): 465–96.
Slane and Sanders 2005. K. W. Slane and G.
D. R. Sanders. “Corinth: Late Roman
Horizons.” Hesperia 74 (2005): 243–97.
Smarnakis 2007. Y. Smarnakis. “A
Contribution to the Archaeology of
Modern Utopian Thought: History and
Utopia in Plethon’s Oeuvre.” Historein 7
(2007): 103–13.
Smpyraki-Kalantzi and Dina 1982. A.
Smpyraki-Kalantzi and A. Dina. “7Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt
37 (1982): Chronika B2, 243–58.
Smyris and Kefallonitou 2007. G. Smyris
and F. Kefallonitou. “ΔÔ ¤ÚÁÔ Ù˘ 8˘
∂ÊÔÚ›·˜ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÙ‹ÙˆÓ ÛÙË
¡ÈÎfiÔÏË ·fi ÙÔ 1988 ¤ˆ˜ ÙÔ 2002.” In
Zachos 2007, vol. 1, 21–28.
Snively 1984. C. Snively. “Cemetery
Churches in the Early Byzantine Period in
Eastern Illyricum.” Greek Orthodox
Theological Review 29 (1984): 117–24.
Snively 2007. C. S. Snively. “Late Antique
Nicopolis: An essay on the city walls and
their implications for urbanism.” In Zachos
2007, vol. 1, 739–49.
Sodini 1970. J.-P. Sodini. “Mosaiques
paléochrétiennes de Grèce.” BCH 94
(1970): 699–755.
Sodini 1976. J.-P. Sodini. “L’ambon de la
Rotonde Saint Georges: remarques sur la
typologie et le décor.” BCH 100 (1976):
494–97.
Sodini 1977. J.-P. Sodini. “Remarques sur la
sculpture architecturale d’Attique, de
Béotie et du Péloponnèse à l’époque
paléochrétienne.” BCH 101 (1977): 423–50.
Sodini 1984a. J.-P. Sodini. “L’habitat urbain
en Grèce à la veille des invasions.” In Villes
et peuplement dans l’Illyricum protobyzantin.
Actes du colloque organisé par l’École
française de Rome. Rome, 12–14 mai 1982,
341–96. Collection de l’École française de
Rome, 77. Rome, 1984.
Sodini 1984b. J.-P. Sodini. “La sculpture
architecturale à l’époque paléochrétienne
en Illyricum.” In Xe CIAC 1984, vol. I, 207–98.
Sodini 1989. J.-P. Sodini. “Le commerce des
marbres à l’époque protobyzantine.” In
Lefort and Morrisson 1989,163–86.
Sodini 1997. J. P. Sodini. “Habitat dans
l’antiquité tardive.” ΔfiÔÈ 7/2 (1997):
435–57.
Sofianos 1993. D. Sofianos. ŸÛÈÔ˜ §Ô˘Î¿˜.
Athens, 1993.
Sotiriou 1919. G. Sotiriou, “¶·Ï·È¿
¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ πÏÈÛÛÔ‡.” ∞∂ (1919):
1–31.
Sotiriou 1924. G. A. Sotiriou. “√ ÂÓ £‹‚·È˜
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi˜ Ó·fi˜ °ÚËÁÔÚ›Ô˘ ÙÔ˘
£ÂÔÏfiÁÔ˘.” ∞∂ (1924): 1–26.
Sotiriou 1929. G. Sotiriou. “∞È ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈη›
£‹‚·È Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜.” AE (1929): 1–158
(reprinted by the Archaeological Society of
Athens, Athens, 1993).
Sotiriou 1933. G. Sotiriou. “¶ÂÚ› ÙˆÓ ÂÓ ¡.
∞Á¯È¿Ïˆ ·Ó·ÛηÊÒÓ.” PAE (1933): 46–57.
Sotiriou 1936. G. Sotiriou. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ› ¡¤·˜
∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1936): 57–67.
Sotiriou 1937. G. Sotiriou. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ› ¡¤·˜
∞Á¯È¿ÏÔ˘.” PAE (1937): 53–58.
Sotiriou 1939. G. Sotiriou. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ› ÂÓ
¡¤· ∞Á¯È¿Ïˆ.” PAE (1939): 53–72.
Sotiriou 1940. G. Sotiriou. “∞Ó·Ûηʷ› ÂÓ ¡.
∞Á¯È¿Ïˆ.” PAE (1940): 18–22.
Sotiriou and Sotiriou 1952. G. and M.
Sotiriou. ∏ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ÙÔ˘ ·Á›Ô˘ ¢ËÌËÙÚ›Ô˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯.
∂Ù., 34. ∞thens, 1952.
Soustal and Koder 1981. P. Soustal and J.
Koder. Nikopolis und Kephallenia. Österr.
Ak. der Wiss.. Philos.-histor. Klasse.
Denkschr., 150. TIB, 3. Vienna, 1981.
Spain 1987. R. J. Spain. “The Roman
Watermill in the Athenean Agora. A ¡ew
View of the Evidence.” Hesperia 56 (1987):
335–53.
Spatharakis 1981. I. Spatharakis. Corpus of
Dated Illuminated Greek Manuscripts to the
Year 1453. 2 vols. Byzantina Neerlandica, 8.
Leiden, 1981.
Spieser 1984. J. M. Spieser, Thessalonique et
ses monuments du IVe au VIe siècle.
Contribution à l’étude d’une ville
paléochrétienne. Paris, 1984.
Spieser 1989. J. M. Spieser. “L’évolution de
la ville Byzantine de l’époque
Paléochrétienne à l’Iconoclasme.” In Lefort
and Morrisson 1989, 97–106.
Spieser 1999. J.-M. Spieser. “Les remparts de
Thessalonique. A propos d’un livre recent.”
BSl 60 (1999): 557–74.
Spiro 1978. M. Spiro. Critical corpus of the
mosaic pavements on the Greek mainland,
fourth/sixth centuries: with architectural
surveys. 2 vols. New York, 1978.
Stackelberg 1834. O. M. von Stackelberg. La
Grèce. Vues pittoresques et topographiques.
Paris, 1834.
Starida 2011. L. Starida, “∞Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈο
ηٿÏÔÈ· Ù˘ ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘ Ù˘ ∞Ú·‚ÔÎÚ·Ù›·˜
ÛÙÔ ∏Ú¿ÎÏÂÈÔ” (text of an unpublished
lecture).
Starida and Kanaki 2008. L. Starida and E.
Kanaki. “∞Ó·Ûηʤ˜ ÛÙËÓ fiÏË ÙÔ˘
∏Ú·ÎÏ›Ԣ ˆ˜ ÙÔ 2008.” In ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi
ŒÚÁÔ ∫Ú‹Ù˘ 1. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο Ù˘ 1˘ ™˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛ˘.
ƒ¤ı˘ÌÓÔ, 28–30 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2008, edited by
M. Andrianakis and I. Tzachili, 401–13.
Rethymnon, 2010.
Stavrianopoulou 2009. S. Stavrianopoulou.
“¶ÂÚÈËÁËÙ¤˜ ÛÙÔÓ ª˘ÛÙÚ¿.” In Sinos 2009,
45–54.
Stefani 2004a. L. D. Stefani. “ΔÔÔÁÚ·Ê›·
Ù˘ ∏Ì·ı›·˜ ·fi ÙËÓ ÂÔ¯‹ ÙÔ˘ ™È‰‹ÚÔ˘
̤¯ÚÈ ÙËÓ fi„ÈÌË ·Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ·.” In °ÓˆÚÈÌ›· ÌÂ
ÙË °Ë ÙÔ˘ ∞ÏÂÍ¿Ó‰ÚÔ˘. ∏ ÂÚ›ÙˆÛË ÙÔ˘
¡ÔÌÔ‡ ∏Ì·ı›·˜: πÛÙÔÚ›·–∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·,
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο EÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋˜ ¢ÈËÌÂÚ›‰·˜ (7–8
πÔ˘Ó›Ô˘ 2003), 33–54. Thessalonike, 2004.
Stefani 2004b. L. D. Stefani. “√È
¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÔ› ¯ÚfiÓÔÈ.” In ∂Ú·ÙÂÈÓ‹ ∏Ì·ı›·,
10–33. Berroia, 2004.
Stein 2001. C. A. Stein. “In the Shadow of
Nicopolis: Patterns of Settlements on the
Ayios Thomas Peninsula.” In Foundation
and Destruction. Nicopolis and Northwestern
Greece, edited by J. Isager, 65–77.
Monographs of the Danish Institute at
Athens, 3. Athens, 2001.
Steinmüller 1977. U. Steinmüller.
Monemvasia. Berlin, 1977.
Stephan 1986. Ch. Stephan. Ein
byzantinisches Bildensemble. Die Mosaiken
und Fresken der Apostelkirche zu Thessaloniki.
Manuskripte für Kunstwissenschaft in der
Wernerschen Verlagsgesellschaft, 7.
Worms, 1986.
Stephanidou-Tiveriou 1998. T. StephanidouTiveriou. ∞Ó·Ûηʋ ¢›Ô˘ 1, ∏ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË.
Thessalonike, 1998.
Stikas 1956. E. Stikas, “™˘Ó¤¯ÈÛȘ ·Ó·Ûηʋ˜
Ù˘ ‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋˜ ∂ÚÌÈfiÓ˘.” ƒ∞∂ (1956): 179–84.
Stikas 1961. E. Stikas. “∫ÔÈÌËÙËÚȷ΋
‚·ÛÈÏÈ΋ ¶·Ï·È¿˜ ∫ÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘.” P∞∂ (1961):
129–36.
Stikas 1965. E. Stikas. “La basilique
céméteriale récemment découverte à
Corinthe.” In Atti del VI congresso
internationale di archeologia cristiana.
Ravenna, 23.–30. settembre 1962, 471–79.
Studi di antichità cristiana, 26. Rome,
1965.
Stikas 1970. E. G. Stikas. To ÔÈÎÔ‰ÔÌÈÎfiÓ
¯ÚÔÓÈÎfiÓ Ù˘ ÌÔÓ‹˜ ÙÔ˘ √Û›Ô˘ §Ô˘Î¿
ºˆÎ›‰Ô˜. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 65.
Athens 1970.
Stikas 1981. E. Stikas. “∞Ó·Ûηʋ ‚·ÛÈÏÈÎÒÓ
∞ÌÊÈfiψ˜.” P∞∂ (1981): 26–32.
Stillwell MacKay 2003. T. Stillwell MacKay.
“Pottery of the Frankish Period. 13th and
Early 14th Century.” In Centenary 2003,
401–22.
Stojakovic’ 1966. A. Stojakovic’. “Quelques
représentations de Salonique dans la
peinture mediévale serbe.” In ÷ÚÈÛÙ‹ÚÈÔÓ
ÂȘ ∞. ∫. √ÚÏ¿Ó‰ÔÓ, vol. 2, 25–48. Athens,
1966.
Stoyioglou 1971. G. A. Stoyioglou. ∏ ÂÓ
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË ¶·ÙÚÈ·Ú¯È΋ ªÔÓ‹ ÙˆÓ
μÏ·Ù¿‰ˆÓ. ∞Ó¿ÏÂÎÙ· μÏ·Ù¿‰ˆÓ, 12.
Thessalonike, 1971.
Strabo 1877. Strabonis Geographica, edited
by A. Meineke. 3 vols. Leipzg, 1877.
Strabo 2004. Strabons Geographika. Mit
Übersetzung und Kommentar, edited by
S. Radt, vol. 3, books IX–XIII. Göttingen,
2004.
Strano 2008. G. Strano. Leone Choirosphaktes,
Corrispondenza. Introduzione, testo critico,
traduzione e note di commento.
Pubblicazioni del Centro Studi sull’Antico
Cristianesimo, 2. Catania, 2008.
Struck 1909. A. Struck. “Vier byzantinische
Kirchen der Argolis. Plataniti, Chonika,
Merbaka und Areia.” AM 34 (1909):
189–236.
Struck 1910. A. Struck. Mistra. Eine
mittelalterliche Ruinenstadt. Vienna and
Leipzig, 1910.
Struck 1911. A. Struck. Athen und Attika.
Griechenland: Land, Leute und Denkmäler,
1. Vienna and Leipzig, 1911.
Sullivan 1987. D. Sullivan. The Life of St.
Nikon. Brookline, Mass., 1987.
Svoronos 1959. N. Svoronos. “Recherches
sur le Cadastre Byzantin et la Fiscalité aux
XI et XII Siècles: Le Cadastre de Thèbes.”
BCH 83/1 (1959): 1–145.
Svoronos 1984. N. Svoronos. “∏ ÛËÌ·Û›· Ù˘
›‰Ú˘Û˘ ÙÔ˘ ∞Á›Ô˘ ŸÚÔ˘˜ ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ·Ó¿Ù˘ÍË
ÙÔ˘ ÂÏÏ·‰ÈÎÔ‡ ¯ÒÚÔ˘.” ¢ÂÏÙ›Ô Ù˘ ∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ ¡ÂÔÂÏÏËÓÈÎÔ‡ ¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌÔ‡ ηÈ
°ÂÓÈ΋˜ ¶·È‰Â›·˜ 6 (1984): 17–47.
Symeonoglou 1985. S. Symeonoglou. The
Topography of Thebes from the Bronze Age to
Modern Times. Princeton, N.J., 1985.
Synekdemos 1939. Le Synekdemos d’Hiéroclès
et l’opuscule géographique de Georges de
Chypre, edited by E. Honigmann. Brussels,
1939.
Sythiakakis-Kritsimallis 2008. V. SythiakakisKritsimallis. “Architectural Sculptures of
the Early-Christian and Early Medieval
Period in Thessaly (IVth–VIIIth c. A.D.).” In
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο 1o˘ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ πÛÙÔÚ›·˜ ηÈ
¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌÔ‡ Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·Ï›·˜. §¿ÚÈÛ·, 9–11
¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2006, vol. ππ, 645–59.
Thessalonike, 2008.
Sythiakakis and Vassilakis 2010. V.
Sythiakakis and ∑. Vassilakis. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋
¤Ú¢ӷ ·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎÔ‡ ÏÔ˘ÙÚÈÎÔ‡
Û˘ÁÎÚÔÙ‹Ì·ÙÔ˜ ÛÙȘ ªÔ›Ú˜–ÚÒÙ·
·ÔÙÂϤÛÌ·Ù·.” In μ’ ¶·ÁÎÚ‹ÙÈ· ™˘Ó¿ÓÙËÛË
ÁÈ· ÙÔ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈÎfi ŒÚÁÔ ÛÙËÓ ∫Ú‹ÙË.
ƒ¤ı˘ÌÓÔ, 26–28 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 2010 (in press).
Sythiakakis and Voyatzis 2011. V.
Sythiakakis and S. Voyatzis. “Redating the
Basilica of Dormition, Kalampaka,
Thessaly.” JÖB 61 (2011): 195–228.
Tachiaos 2013. A.-E. N. Tachiaos.
“Byzantium and the Integration of the
Slavs in the Orthodox Oikoumene.” In
Washington, D.C., and Los Angeles 2013,
289–91.
Tafel and Thomas 1964. G. L. F. Tafel and G.
M. Thomas. Urkunden zur älteren Handelsund Staatsgeschichte der Republik Venedig
mit besonderer Beziehung auf Byzanz und die
Levante. Fontes rerum Austriacarum,
Österreischische Geschichts-Quellen.
Diplomataria et acta, vol. I. Vienna, 1856
(reprinted Amsterdam 1964).
Tafrali 1913. O. Tafrali. Topographie de
Thessalonique. Paris, 1913.
Talbot 1996. A. M. Talbot. Holy Women of
Byzantium: Ten Saints’ Lives. Byzantine
saints’ lives in translation, 1. Washington,
D.C., 1996.
Tanoulas 1997. T. Tanoulas. Δ· ¶ÚԇϷȷ
Ù˘ ∞ıËÓ·˚΋˜ ∞ÎÚfiÔÏ˘ ηٿ ÙÔÓ ªÂÛ·›ˆÓ·.
μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 165. Athens,
1997.
Tanoulas 2000. Δ. Tanoulas. “The Athenian
Acropolis as a castle under Latin rule
(1204–1458): Military and building
technology.” In Δ¯ÓÔÁÓˆÛ›· ÛÙËÓ
§·ÙÈÓÔÎÚ·ÙÔ‡ÌÂÓË ∂ÏÏ¿‰·, ∏ÌÂÚ›‰·. ∞ı‹Ó· 8
ºÂ‚ÚÔ˘·Ú›Ô˘ 1997, 96–122. Athens, 2000.
Tanoulas 2001. T. Tanoulas. “∏ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Ù˘
·ıËÓ·˚΋˜ ∞ÎÚfiÔÏ˘ ·fi ÙÔ˘˜ ºÚ¿ÁÎÔ˘˜
ÛÂ Û˘Ó¿ÚÙËÛË Ì ٷ οÛÙÚ· ÙˆÓ
™Ù·˘ÚÔÊfiÚˆÓ.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο °’ ∫˘ÚÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ, 13–83. Nicosia, 2001.
Tataki 1988. A. B. Tataki. Ancient Beroea:
Prosopography and Society. ∂ıÓ. ÿ‰Ú. ∂Ú¢Ó.,
∫¤ÓÙÚÔ ∂Ú¢Ó. ƒˆÌ. ∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ·˜.
ªÂÏÂÙ‹Ì·Ù·, 8. Athens, 1988.
Theis 1990. L. Theis. Die Architektur der Kirche
der Panagia Par ēgor ētissa in Arta/Epirus.
Amsterdam, 1990.
Theis 1992. L. Theis. “Die Architektur der
Kirche der Panagia Parēgorētissa.” In
Chrysos 1992, 475–93.
Themelis 2002. P. G. Themelis.
“ÀÛÙÂÚÔڈ̷˚΋ Î·È ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ªÂÛÛ‹ÓË.” In Themelis and Konti 2002,
20–58.
Themelis and Konti 2002. ¶ÚˆÙÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ªÂÛÛ‹ÓË Î·È √Ï˘Ì›·, ∞ÛÙÈÎfi˜ Î·È ·ÁÚÔÙÈÎfi˜
¯ÒÚÔ˜ ÛÙËÓ ¢˘ÙÈ΋ ¶ÂÏÔfiÓÓËÛÔ. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο
ÙÔ˘ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘. ∞ı‹Ó·, 29–30 ª·˝Ô˘
1998, edited by P. G. Themelis and V.
Konti. ∞thens, 2002
Theocharidou 1985–86. K. Theocharidou.
“™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙË ÌÂϤÙË Ù˘ ·Ú·ÁˆÁ‹˜
ÔÈÎÔ‰ÔÌÈÎÒÓ ÎÂÚ·ÌÈÎÒÓ ÚÔ˚fiÓÙˆÓ ÛÙ·
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ Î·È ÌÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ¯ÚfiÓÈ·.”
DChAE 13 (1985–86): 97–112.
Theocharidou 1994. K. Theocharidou. ∏
·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡ Ù˘ ∞Á›·˜ ™ÔÊ›·˜ ÛÙË
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË. ¢ËÌÔÛ. ÙÔ˘ ∞Ú¯. ¢ÂÏÙ., 52.
∞thens, 1994.
Theocharidou-Tsaprali and MavropoulouTsioumi 1985. K. Theocharidou-Tsaprali
and Ch. Mavropoulou-Tsioumi. ∏
·Ó·ÛًψÛË ÙˆÓ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ Î·È
ÌÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ÌÓËÌ›ˆÓ ÛÙË £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.
∞thens, 1985.
Theocharis 2012. G. Theocharis. “ΔÔ
ıˆÚ¿ÎÈÔ Ì ÙÔ ÁÔÚÁfiÓÂÈÔ ÛÙÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ηÈ
ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfi ªÔ˘Û›Ô.” DChAE 33 (2012):
93–104.
Theodorou-Mavromatidi 1995. A.
Theodorou-Mavromatidi. “∞Ó·Ûηʤ˜ ÛÙÔ
¡¤Ô ∞Ô¯ÂÙ¢ÙÈÎfi ¢›ÎÙ˘Ô £‹‚·˜.” In
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο μ’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ μÔȈÙÈÎÒÓ
ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ. §ÂÈ‚·‰È¿, 6–10 ™ÂÙÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1992 =
∂∂μª 2/1 (1995): 511–24.
Theodoulou 2002. T. Theodoulou. “§¤¯·ÈÔ:
ΔÔ ‰˘ÙÈÎfi ÏÈÌ¿ÓÈ Ù˘ ∫ÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘.” Enalia 6
(2002): 83–99.
Theophanes 1963. Theophanis chronographia,
edited by C. de Boor, vol. 1. Leipzig, 1883
(reprinted Hildesheim, 1963).
Theophanes Continuatus 1838. Theophanes
Continuatus, Ioannes Cameniata, Symeon
Magister, Georgius Monachus, edited by I.
Bekker, 1–481. CSHB. Bonn, 1838.
Theophylaktos 1984. T. Theophylaktos.
“¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÁÈ· ÙË ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË Ù˘
∏›ÚÔ˘.” In Xe CIAC 1984, vol. II, 563–74.
Thessalonike 1997. Secular Medieval
Architecture in the Balkans, 1300–1500, and
its Preservation, edited by S. C’určic’ and ∂.
Hadjitryphonos. Exh. cat. Thessalonike,
1997.
Thessalonike 2002. Everyday Life in
Byzantium. Byzantine Hours. Works and Days
in Byzantium, edited by D. PapanikolaBakirtzi. Exh. cat. Athens 2002.
Thiriet 1975. F. Thiriet. La Romanie Vénitienne
au Moyen Age. Le développement et
l’exploitation du domaine colonial vénitien
(XIIe–XVe siècles). Bibliothèque des Écoles
françaises d’Athènes et de Rome, 193.
Paris, 1975.
Thompson 1959. H. A. Thompson.
“Athenian Twilight, A.D. 267–600.” JRS
49 (1959): 61–72.
Thompson and Wycherley 1972. H. A
Thompson and R. E. Wycherley. The Agora
of Athens: The History, Shape and Uses of an
Ancient City Center. Athenian Agora, XIV.
Princeton, N. J., 1972.
TIB. Tabula Imperii Byzantini.
Timarion 1974. Pseudo-Luciano, Timarione.
Testo critico, introduzione, traduzione,
commentario e lessico, edited by R.
Romano. Collana di Studi e Testi diretta da
A. Garzya, 2. Naples, 1974.
Tinnefield 2003. F. Tinnefield. “Intellectuals
in Late Byzantine Thessalonike.” DOP 57
(2003): 153–72.
TM. Travaux et Mémoires.
Todorov 1983. N. Todorov. The Balkan City,
1400–1900. Seattle, 1983.
Topping 1990. P. Topping. “Argos and
Nauplia in the Rubrics of the Senato Misti
(1389–1413).” £ËÛ·˘Ú›ÛÌ·Ù· 20 (1990):
170–84.
Totev 2011. K. Totev. Thessalonican Eulogia
found in Bulgaria (Lead ampules, enkolpia
and icons from the 12th–15th centuries).
Veliko Tirnovo, 2011.
Touchais 1998. G. Touchais. “Chroniques
des fouilles et découvertes archéologiques
en Grèce en 1996 et 1997. Argos.” BCH
122 (1998): 754–58.
Tougher 1997. S. Tougher. The Reign of Leo
VI (886–912): Politics and People. The
medieval Mediterranean, 15. Leiden, 1997.
ΔÔuloupa et al. 1964. ∂. ΔÔuloupa, École
Française d’Athènes, and P. Lazaridis.
“μÔȈٛ·.” ∞Delt 19 (1964): Chronika μ2,
192–212.
Touloupa and Vocotopoulou 1973–74.
E. Touloupa and I. Vocotopoulou.
“∞Ú¯·ÈfiÙËÙ˜ Î·È ÌÓËÌ›· ∏›ÚÔ˘.” ∞Delt
29 (1973–74): Chronika B2, 589–90.
Touratsoglou 1970. I. P. Touratsoglou.
“¢‡Ô Ó¤·È ÂÈÁÚ·ÊÈη› Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›·È ÂÚ› ÙÔ˘
KÔÈÓÔ‡ ÙˆÓ ª·Î‰fiÓˆÓ Î·Ù¿ ÙÔÓ ÙÚ›ÙÔÓ
ÌÂÙ·¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈÎfiÓ ·ÈÒÓ·.” In Ancient
Macedonia. Papers read at the First
International Symposium held at Thessaloniki,
26–29 August 1968, edited by B. Laourdas and
Ch. Makaronas, 280–90. Thessalonike, 1970.
Touratsoglou 1985. π. P. Touratsoglou. “ΔÔ˘
·ÁȈٿÙÔ˘ ·ÙÚ›Ô˘ ıÂÔ‡ ∫·‚›ÚÔ˘. . . .”
∏ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË 1 (1985): 71–83.
Touratsoglou 1995. I. Touratsoglou.
ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·. πÛÙÔÚ›·–MÓËÌ›·–ªÔ˘Û›·.
Athens, 1995.
Tourta 1994. A. Tourta. ™Î¢ÔÊ˘Ï¿ÎÈÔ πÂÚ¿˜
ªÔÓ‹˜ μÏ·Ù¿‰ˆÓ. ∞thens, 1994.
Tourta and Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou 2005.
A. Tourta and E. Kourkoutidou-Nikolaidou.
Museum of Byzantine Culture, Short Guide.
Athens, 2005.
Travlos 1950. J. Travlos. “ÃÚÔÓÈο.” PAE
(1950): 41–56.
Travlos 1960. J. Travlos. ¶ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ ÂͤÏÈÍȘ
ÙˆÓ ∞ıËÓÒÓ. Athens, 1960.
Travlos 1964. J. Travlos. “ÃÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈη›
∞ı‹Ó·È.” £ÚËÛ΢ÙÈ΋ Î·È ∏ıÈ΋
∂Á΢ÎÏÔ·›‰ÂÈ· 1 (1964): 709–58.
Travlos 1966. J. Travlos. “Athen.” RbK 1
(1966): 349–89.
Travlos 1971. J. Travlos. Pictorial Dictionary of
Ancient Athens. London, 1971.
Travlos 1973. J. Travlos. “∏ ˘ÚfiÏËÛȘ ÙÔ˘
¶·ÚıÂÓÒÓÔ˜ ˘fi ÙˆÓ ∂ÚÔ‡ÏˆÓ Î·› Ë
ÂÈÛ΢‹ ÙÔ˘ ηٿ ÙÔ‡˜ ¯ÚfiÓÔ˘˜ ÙÔ˘
·˘ÙÔÎÚ¿ÙÔÚÔ˜ πÔ˘ÏÈ·ÓÔ‡.” ∞∂ (1973):
218–36.
Travlos 1986. J. Travlos. “ΔÔ ÙÂÙÚ¿ÎÔÁ¯Ô
ÔÈÎÔ‰fiÌËÌ· Ù˘ μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹Î˘ ÙÔ˘
∞‰ÚÈ·ÓÔ‡.” πn º›ÏÈ· ¤Ë ÂȘ °ÂÒÚÁÈÔÓ E.
M˘ÏˆÓ¿Ó ‰È· Ù· 60 ¤ÙË ÙÔ˘ ·Ó·ÛηÊÈÎÔ‡ ÙÔ˘
¤ÚÁÔ˘, vol. 1, 344–47. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜
∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 103. ∞thens, 1986.
| 291 |
Triantafyllidis 2006. P. Triantafyllidis.
“πÛÙÔÚÈο Î·È ·Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁÈο ∞Á·ıÔÓËÛ›Ô˘.”
∞∞∞ 39 (2006): 175–92.
Triantaphyllopoulos 1981. D.
Triantaphyllopoulos. “∏ ∂ÈÛÎÔ‹ Î·È Ë
ªÔÓ‹ ∫Ô˙›Ï˘ ÛÙËÓ ◊ÂÈÚÔ (™˘Ó·ÁˆÁ‹
ÛÙÔȯ›ˆÓ–¶ÚÔ‚Ï‹Ì·Ù·).” In Actes du XVe
Congrès International d’Études byzantines.
Athènes, Septembre 1976. II. Art et Archéologie.
Communications, vol. 2, 839–62. Athens,
1981.
Troianos and Pitsakis 1988. S. Troianos and
K. Pitsakis. º˘ÛÈÎfi Î·È ‰ÔÌË̤ÓÔ ÂÚÈ‚¿ÏÏÔÓ
ÛÙȘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¤˜ ÓÔÌÈΤ˜ ËÁ¤˜. Athens, 1988.
Trolese 2004. San Luca Evangelista testimone
della fede che unisce: Ecumenismo, tradizioni
storico-liturgiche, iconografia e spiritualità.
Atti del Congresso Internazionale. Padova,
16–21 Ottobre 2000, edited by F. G. B.
Trolese. 3 vols. Padua, 2004.
Trombley 1989. F. Trombley. “Boeotia in
Late Antiquity: Epigraphic evidence on
society, economy, and Christianization.” In
Boiotika, edited by H. Beister and J. Buckler,
215–28. Münchener Arbeiten zur Alten
Geschichte, 2. Munich, 1989.
Trombley 1993. F. R. Trompley, “Byzantine
“Dark Age” Cities in Comparative
Context.” In Δfi ∂ÏÏËÓÈÎfiÓ. Studies in honor
of Speros Vryonis, Jr., vol. I: Hellenic Antiquity
and Byzantium, edited by M. V. Anastos et
al., 429–49. New Rochelle and New York,
1993.
Trombley 2007. F. R. Trombley, “Nicopolis
and its territorium in the Byzantine Dark
Age (c. 580–850 A.D.)”. In Zachos 2007,
vol. 1, 151–62.
Tsamis 1985. D. Tsamis. ºÈÏÔı¤Ô˘
∫ˆÓÛÙ·ÓÙÈÓÔ˘fiψ˜ ÙÔ˘ ∫fiÎÎÈÓÔ˘ ·ÁÈÔÏÔÁÈο
¤ÚÁ·. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓÈΛ˜ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ› ™˘ÁÁÚ·Ê›˜,
4. Thessalonike, 1985.
Tsanana et al. 2013. Ai. Tsanana, L. Toska,
and D. Bitzikopoulos. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈΤ˜
¤Ú¢Ó˜ ÛÙËÓ ∫·Úοڷ Ù˘ ∫·Ï·Ì·ÚÈ¿˜.” In
Essays in Honor of Ioakeim Papaggelos
(forthcoming).
Tsaras 1958. G. Tsaras. ¢È‹ÁËÛȘ ÂÚ› Ù˘
ÙÂÏÂ˘Ù·›·˜ ·ÏÒÛˆ˜ Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.
μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË Ù˘ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢,
1. Thessalonike, 1958.
Tsekes 2001. G. Tsekes. “TÔ ÕÚÁÔ˜ ÛÙËÓ
·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈ΋ Î·È ÌÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô (MÈ· ÚÒÙË ÚÔÛ¤ÁÁÈÛË ÛÙËÓ
ÙÔÔÁÚ·Ê›· ÙÔ˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜).”
¢·Ó·fi˜ 2 (2001): 89–102.
Tsekes 2002. G. Tsekes. “Castle of Larissa in
Argos.” In Venetians and Knights
Hospitallers. Military Architecture Networks
(Archi-Med Pilot Action), edited by A.
Triposkoufi and A. Tsitouri, 104–6. Athens,
2002.
Tsiapali 2008. M. Tsiapali. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋
¤Ú¢ӷ ÛÙÔ˘˜ ÓÔÌÔ‡˜ °Ú‚ÂÓÒÓ Î·È
∫Ô˙¿Ó˘.” ∞∂ª£ 22 (2008): 31–37.
Tsiapali 2011. M. Tsiapali. “Mosaics of a Villa
in Velvento near Kozani, Greece.” Zograf
35 (2011): 21–26.
Tsigarida et al. 2007. E.-B. Tsigarida, S.
Vasileiou, and D. Patis. “∞Ó·ÛηÊÈ΋
¤Ú¢ӷ ÛÙÔ ÈÂÚfi ÙÔ˘ ÕÌ̈ÓÔ˜ ¢Èfi˜ ÛÙËÓ
∫·ÏÏÈı¤· Ù˘ ÷ÏÎȉÈ΋˜ ηٿ ÙÔ 2007.”
∞∂ª£ 21 (2007): 323–30.
Tsigaridas 1986a. E. ¡. Tsigaridas.
“∂ÈÎÔÓÈÛÙÈΤ˜ Ì·ÚÙ˘Ú›Â˜ ·Á›Ô˘ °ÚËÁÔÚ›Ô˘
¶·Ï·Ì¿ Û ӷԇ˜ Ù˘ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿˜ ηÈ
μ¤ÚÔÈ·˜. ™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙËÓ ÂÈÎÔÓÔÁÚ·Ê›· ÙÔ˘
·Á›Ô˘.” In ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο £ÂÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡ ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ
ÂȘ ÙÈÌ‹Ó Î·È ÌÓ‹ÌËÓ ÙÔ˘ ÂÓ ∞Á›ÔȘ ¶·ÙÚfi˜
ËÌÒÓ °ÚËÁÔÚ›Ô˘ ∞Ú¯ÈÂÈÛÎfiÔ˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ ÙÔ˘ ¶·Ï·Ì¿ (14–16 ¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘
1984), 263–94. Thessalonike, 1986.
Tsigaridas 1986b. ∂. ¡. Tsigaridas. √È
ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ Ù˘ ÌÔÓ‹˜ §·ÙfiÌÔ˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ Î·È Ë ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÙÔ˘
| 292 |
12Ô˘ aÈÒÓ·. ∂Ù·ÈÚ›· ª·Î‰ÔÓÈÎÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ. ª·Î‰ÔÓÈ΋ μÈ‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË, ·Ú. 66.
Thessalonike, 1986.
Tsigaridas 1988. E. ¡. Tsigaridas. “La
peinture à Kastoria et en Macédoine
grecque occidentale vers l’année 1200.
Fresques et icônes.” In Studenica et l’·rt
byzantin autour de l’année 1200, 309–19.
Académie Serbe des Sciences et des Arts.
Colloques Scientifiques, XLI. Classe des
Sciences Historiques, 11. Belgrade, 1988.
Tsigaridas 1992. E. ¡. Tsigaridas. “™¯¤ÛÂȘ
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ Î·È ‰˘ÙÈ΋˜ Ù¤¯Ó˘ ÛÙË
ª·Î‰ÔÓ›· ·fi ÙÔÓ 13Ô ¤ˆ˜ ÙÔÓ 15Ô
·ÈÒÓ·.” In ∂Ù·ÈÚ›· ª·Î‰ÔÓÈÎÒÓ ™Ô˘‰ÒÓ.
∂ÔÚÙ·ÛÙÈÎfi˜ ΔfiÌÔ˜ 50 ¯ÚfiÓÈ·, 1939–1989,
157–207. Thessalonike, 1992.
Tsigaridas 1999. E. N. Tsigaridas.
ΔÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ Ù˘ ÂÚÈfi‰Ô˘ ÙˆÓ ¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁˆÓ
Û ӷԇ˜ Ù˘ ª·Î‰ÔÓ›·˜. Thessalonike, 1999.
Tsigaridas 2002. E. ¡. Tsigaridas. Kastoria
Byzantine Museum, Byzantine and PostByzantine Icons. Athens, 2002.
Tsigaridas 2003. E. N. Tsigaridas. “∏
ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÛÙË μ¤ÚÔÈ· ηٿ ÙË
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” In μÂÚÔ›·˜ ªÂÏÂÙ‹Ì·Ù·,
30–39. Berroia, 2003.
Tsigaridas 2004a. E. N. Tsigaridas. “∏
ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÛÙË μ¤ÚÔÈ· ηٿ ÙË
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô (12Ô˜–15Ô˜ ·È.).” In
°ÓˆÚÈÌ›· Ì ÙË °Ë ÙÔ˘ ∞ÏÂÍ¿Ó‰ÚÔ˘. ∏
ÂÚ›ÙˆÛË ÙÔ˘ ¡ÔÌÔ‡ ∏Ì·ı›·˜, πÛÙÔÚ›·–
∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·. ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋˜
¢ÈËÌÂÚ›‰·˜ (7–8 πÔ˘Ó›Ô˘ 2003), 129–54.
Thessalonike, 2004.
Tsigaridas 2004b. E. N. Tsigaridas. “∏
ÌÓËÌÂȷ΋ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÛÙË μ¤ÚÔÈ· ηٿ ÙË
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ÂÚ›Ô‰Ô.” In ∂Ú·ÙÂÈÓ‹ ∏Ì·ı›·,
172–93. Berroia, 2004.
Tsigaridas 2008. E. N. Tsigaridas. √È
ÙÔȯÔÁڷʛ˜ ÙÔ˘ ·ÚÂÎÎÏËÛ›Ô˘ ÙÔ˘ ∞Á›Ô˘
∂˘ı˘Ì›Ô˘ (1302/3), ¤ÚÁÔ ÙÔ˘ ª·ÓÔ˘‹Ï
¶·ÓÛ¤ÏËÓÔ˘ ÛÙËÓ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.
Thessalonike, 2008.
Tsigaridas 2010. E. Tsigaridas. “L’activité
artistique du peintre thessalonicien
Georges Kalliergis.” DChAE 31 (2010): 53–70.
Tsigaridas 2011. E. Tsigaridas. “Les fresques
de l’église Sainte-Catherine de
Thessalonique.” In Sur les pas de Vojslav J.
Djuric’, 157–66. Académie Serbe des
sciences et des arts. Colloques
scientifiques, 33. Belgrade, 2011.
Tsioumi 1986. Ch. Tsioumi. “∏ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋
ÛÙË £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË ÙÔÓ 9Ô ·ÈÒÓ·.” In
¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ™˘Ó‰ڛԢ, ∂ÔÚÙ·ÛÙÈη› ∂ΉËÏÒÛÂȘ
ÚÔ˜ ÙÈÌ‹Ó Î·È ÌÓ‹ÌËÓ ÙˆÓ ·Á›ˆÓ
·˘Ù·‰¤ÏÊˆÓ ∫˘Ú›ÏÏÔ˘ Î·È ªÂıÔ‰›Ô˘ ÙˆÓ
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓÈΤˆÓ, ºˆÙÈÛÙÒÓ ÙˆÓ ™Ï¿‚ˆÓ
(10–15 ª·˝Ô˘ 1985), 393–410. Thessalonike,
1986.
Tsirpanlis 1985. Z. Tsirpanlis. ∫·Ù¿ÛÙȯÔ
ÂÎÎÏËÛÈÒÓ Î·È ÌÔÓ·ÛÙËÚÈÒÓ ÙÔ˘ ∫ÔÈÓÔ‡
(1284–1548). ¢ˆ‰ÒÓË. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 23.
Ioannina, 1985.
Tsirpanlis 1991. Z. Tsirpanlis. ∏ ƒfi‰Ô˜ Î·È ÔÈ
¡fiÙȘ ™ÔÚ¿‰Â˜ ÛÙ· ¯ÚfiÓÈ· ÙˆÓ πˆ·ÓÓÈÙÒÓ
ÈÔÙÒÓ (14Ô˜–16Ô˜ ·È.). ™˘ÏÏÔÁ‹ ÈÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ
ÌÂÏÂÙÒÓ. Rhodes, 1991.
Tsirpanlis 1995. Z. Tsirpanlis. ∞ӤΉÔÙ·
¤ÁÁÚ·Ê· ÁÈ· ÙË ƒfi‰Ô Î·È ÙȘ ¡fiÙȘ ™ÔÚ¿‰Â˜
·fi ÙÔ ∞Ú¯Â›Ô ÙˆÓ πˆ·ÓÓÈÙÒÓ ÈÔÙÒÓ (1421–
1453). Rhodes, 1995.
Tsitouridou 1975. A. Tsitouridou. “Zidno
slikarstvo Svetog Panteleimona u Solonu.”
Zograf 6 (1975): 14–20.
Tsitouridou 1982. A. Tsitouridou. “Die
Grabkonzeption des ikonographischen
Programms der Kirche Panagia Chalkeon in
Thessaloniki.” In XVI. Internationaler
Byzantinistenkongress, Akten II/5 = JÖB 32/5
(1982): 435–41.
Tsitouridou 1986. A. Tsitouridou. ∏ ÂÓÙÔ›¯È·
˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋ ÙÔ˘ ∞Á›Ô˘ ¡ÈÎÔÏ¿Ô˘ ÛÙË
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË. ™˘Ì‚ÔÏ‹ ÛÙË ÌÂϤÙË Ù˘
¶·Ï·ÈÔÏfiÁÂÈ·˜ ˙ˆÁÚ·ÊÈ΋˜ ηٿ ÙÔÓ ÚÒÈÌÔ
14Ô ·ÈÒÓ·. ∂ÈÛÙËÌÔÓÈ΋ ∂ÂÙËÚ›‰· Ù˘
ºÈÏÔÛÔÊÈ΋˜ ™¯ÔÏ‹˜. ¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, ·Ú. 20.
Thessalonike, 1986.
Tsivikis 2012. N. Tsivikis. “¶Ô‡ ¿Ó ÔÈ fiÏÂȘ
fiÙ·Ó ÂÍ·Ê·Ó›˙ÔÓÙ·È. √ ÔÈÎÈÛÌfi˜ Ù˘ ÚÒÈÌ˘
Î·È Ì¤Û˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ªÂÛÛ‹Ó˘.” In
Kiousopoulou 2012, 47–71.
Tsolakis 2006. P. Tsolakis. “√ıˆÌ·ÓÈ΋
·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÛÙËÓ ∫·ÛÙÔÚÈ¿.” In ¢ÒÚÔÓ.
ΔÈÌËÙÈÎfi˜ ÙfiÌÔ˜ ÛÙÔÓ Î·ıËÁËÙ‹ ¡›ÎÔ ¡ÈÎÔÓ¿ÓÔ,
443–57. Thessalonike, 2006.
Tsoniotis 2008. N. Tsoniotis. “¡¤· ÛÙÔȯ›·
ÁÈ¿ Ùfi ˘ÛÙÂÚÔÚڈ̷˚Îfi Ù›¯Ô˜ Ù˘ ∞ı‹Ó·˜.”
Athens During the Roman Period. Recent
Discoveries, New Evidence. Edited by S.
Vlizos, 55–74. Mouseio Benaki, 4th Suppl.
Athens 2008.
Tsougarakis 1987. D. Tsougarakis. “∏
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ∫Ú‹ÙË.” In ∫Ú‹ÙË: πÛÙÔÚ›·
¶ÔÏÈÙÈÛÌfi˜, edited by N. M. Panagiotakis,
vol. I, 339–404. Crete, 1987.
Tsougarakis 1988. D. Tsougarakis. Byzantine
Crete. From the 5th Century to the Venetian
Conquest. Historical Monographs, 4.
Athens, 1988.
Tsougarakis 2013. D. Tsougarakis. “Rites of
passage. ∞fi ÙËÓ ˘ÛÙÂÚÔÚڈ̷˚΋ ÛÙË
‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ∫Ú‹ÙË: ÔÈÎÈÛÙÈ΋ ÂͤÏÈÍË Î·È
ÎÔÈÓˆÓÈÎÔ› ÌÂÙ·Û¯ËÌ·ÙÈÛÌÔ›.” In
¶ÂÚ·Á̤ӷ π’ ¢ÈÂıÓÔ‡˜ ∫ÚËÙÔÏÔÁÈÎÔ‡
™˘Ó‰ڛԢ, ÷ÓÈ¿ 2006, vol. I, 299–325.
Chania, 2013.
Tsouris 1988. K. Tsouris. √ ÎÂÚ·ÌÔÏ·ÛÙÈÎfi˜
‰È¿ÎÔÛÌÔ˜ ÙˆÓ ˘ÛÙÂÚÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ÌÓËÌ›ˆÓ
Ù˘ μÔÚÂÈÔ‰˘ÙÈ΋˜ ∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜. Ph.D.
dissertation. Kavala, 1988.
Tsouris 1998. K. Tsouris. “¡Â¿ÔÏȘ–
ÃÚÈÛÙÔ‡ÔÏȘ–∫·‚¿Ï·. ¢ÈÔÚıÒÛÂȘ–
ÚÔÛı‹Î˜– ·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÛÙËÓ Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË
Î·È ÙËÓ ‡‰Ú¢ÛË.” ∞Delt 53 (1998): ªeletes
A, 387–454.
Tsouris et al. 1999. K. Tsouris, A. Bakirtzis,
N. Zikos, S. Dadaki, and S. Doukata. “12Ë
∂ÊÔÚ›· μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt
54 (1999): Chronika μ2, 717–32.
Tsouris et al. 2000. K. Tsouris, A. Bakirtzis, S.
Dadaki, S. Doukata, and E.
Papatheophanous-Tsouri. “12Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 55 (2000):
Chronika B2, 896–914.
Tsouris et al. 2001–2004. K. Tsouris, A.
Bakirtzis, S. Dadaki, S. Doukata, A. Brikas,
M. Lychounas, D. Kountourakis, N. Zikos, I.
Volanakis, I. Eliades, and ∂.
Papatheophanous-Tsouri. “12Ë ∂ÊÔÚ›·
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ADelt 56–59
(2001–2004): Chronika μ3, 761–826.
Turner 1820. W. Turner. Journal of a Tour in
the Levant by William Turner. 3 vols. London,
1820.
Tzavara 2010. A. Tzavara. “∏ ÔÚÁ¿ÓˆÛË Ù˘
‰ÈÔ›ÎËÛ˘ Î·È Ù˘ ¿Ì˘Ó·˜ ÙÔ˘ ÕÚÁÔ˘˜ ηٿ
ÙËÓ ÚÒÙË ‚ÂÓÂÙÔÎÚ·Ù›·.” In Maltezou and
Panopoulou 2010, 39–79.
Tzompanaki 1996. Ch. Tzompanaki. ÿӉ·Î·˜,
∏ fiÏË Î·È Ù· Ù›¯Ë. Herakleion, 1996.
Tzouvara-Souli 1987. C. Tzouvara-Souli.
“§·ÙÚ›˜ ÛÙË ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË.” In Chrysos
1987, 169–96.
Tzouvara-Souli 1992. C. Tzouvara-Souli.
∞̂ڷΛ·. ªÂϤÙ˜ ÁÈ· ÙËÓ ∞ÚÙ·, 1. Arta,
1992.
Underwood 1966. P. A. Underwood. The
Kariye Djami. 4 vols. Bollingen Series, 70.
New York, 1966.
Vakalopoulos 1935. A. Vakalopoulos. “ΔÚÂȘ
Ô›ÎÔÈ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓÔ‡ Ú˘ıÌÔ‡ ÂÓ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË.”
°ÚËÁfiÚÈÔ˜ ¶·Ï·Ì¿˜ 19 (1935), 310–16.
Vallianou et al. 1992. D. Vallianou, N.
Dimopoulou-Rethemiotaki, G.
Rethemiotakis, V. La Rosa, A. Di Vita, and
S. Hood. “∫°’ ∂ÊÔÚ›· ¶ÚÔ˚ÛÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ Î·È
∫Ï·ÛÈÎÒÓ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔًوÓ.” ∞Delt 42 (1987):
Chronika B2, 520–55.
van Opstall 2008. É. M. van Opstall. Jean
Géomètre: Poèmes en Hexamètres et en
Distiques Elégiaques. Medieval
Mediterranean: Peoples, Economies and
Cultures, 400–1500, 75. Leiden, 2008.
Vanderheyde 2008. C. Vanderheyde. “Les
sculptures découvertes lors des fouilles de
trois églises byzantines à Corinthe: un
témoignage en faveur d’une occupation
continue de la ville du VIIe au XIIe siècle?”
In La sculpture byzantine VIe–XIIe siècles.
Actes du colloque international organisé par
la 2e Éphorie des antiquités byzantines et
l’École française d’Athènes, 6–8 Septembre
2000, edited by Ch. Pennas and C.
Vanderheyde, 341–57. BCH. Suppl., 49.
Athens, 2008.
Varalis 1994. Y. D. Varalis. “Un sceau de
pain eucharistique d’Argos.” BCH 118
(1994): 331–42.
Varalis 2001. I. D. Varalis. ∏ ›‰Ú·ÛË Ù˘
£Â›·˜ §ÂÈÙÔ˘ÚÁ›·˜ Î·È ÙˆÓ πÂÚÒÓ ∞ÎÔÏÔ˘ıÈÒÓ
ÛÙËÓ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÙÔ˘
·Ó·ÙÔÏÈÎÔ‡ πÏÏ˘ÚÈÎÔ‡ (395–75). 2 vols. Ph.D.
dissertation. Thessalonike, 2001.
Varalis 2007. I. Varalis. “Δ· ¯·Ú·ÎÙËÚÈÛÙÈο
Ù˘ ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋˜ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋˜ ÛÙË
¡ÈÎfiÔÏË. ¶·Ú·ÏÏËϛ˜ ηÈ
‰È·ÊÔÚÔÔÈ‹ÛÂȘ.” In Zachos 2007, vol. 1,
595–607.
Varalis and Tsekes 2008. I. Varalis and G.
Tsekes. “ªÂÛÔ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ÁÏ˘Ù¿ ·fi ÙËÓ
∞ÚÁÔÏ›‰·.” In La sculpture byzantine, VIIe–
XIIe siècles, Actes du colloque international
organisé par la 2e Éphorie des antiquités
byzantines et l’École française d’Athènes (6–8
septembre 2000), edited by Ch. Pennas and
C. Vanderheyde, 359–73. BCH. Suppl., 49.
Athens, 2008.
Vasilaki 2010. M. Vasilaki. “From
Constantinople to Candia: Icon Painting
in Crete around 1400.” In Athens 2010,
58–65.
Vasiliev 1947. A. Vasiliev. “The ‘Life’ of St.
Peter of Argos and its Historical
Significance.” Traditio 5 (1947): 163–90.
Vasilikou and Douma 2007. N. Vasilikou and
E. Douma. Byzantine Museum of Phthiotis:
Hypati. Athens, 2007.
Vassis 2002. I. Vassis. Leon Magistros
Choirosphaktes, Chiliostichos Theologia.
Supplementa Byzantina. Texte und
Untersuchungen, 6. Berlin and New York,
2002.
Veikou 2012. M. Veikou. “Byzantine
Histories, Settlement stories: Kastra, ‘Isles
of Refuge’ and ‘Unspecified Settlements’
as in-between of third spaces.” In
Kiousopoulou 2012, 159–206.
Velenis 1978. G. Velenis. “Wohnviertel und
Wohnhausbau in den byzantinischen
Städten.” In Wohnungsbau im Altertum, vol.
3, 227–36. Diskussionen zur
archäologischen Bauforschung, 3. Berlin,
1978.
Velenis 1990–95. G. Velenis. “∞Ú¯·›· ∞ÁÔÚ¿
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” ∞∞∞ 23–28 (1990–95):
129–41.
Velenis 1996. G. Velenis. “¶ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈο
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” AEM£ 10/B (1996): 491–98.
Velenis 1998. G. Velenis. Δ· Ù›¯Ë Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢. ∞fi ÙÔÓ ∫¿ÛÛ·Ó‰ÚÔ ˆ˜ ÙÔÓ
∏Ú¿ÎÏÂÈÔ. Thessalonike, 1998.
Velenis 2008. G. Velenis. “°Ú·Ù¤˜ ÂÈÁڷʤ˜
·fi ÙÔ ÂÚ›ÛÙˆÔ ÙÔ˘ Ó·Ô‡ Ù˘
¶·ÓÙ¿Ó·ÛÛ·˜ ÛÙË ºÈÏÈÈ¿‰·.” DChAE 29
(2008): 81–86.
Velmans 1967. T. Velmans. “Le Parisinus
grecus 135 et quelques autres peintures de
style gothique dans les manuscripts grecs à
l’époque des Paléologues.” CArch 17
(1967): 209–35.
Veloudis 1970. G. Veloudis. “Philipp
Fallmerayer und die Enstehung des
neugriechischen Historismus.”
Südostforschungen 29 (1970): 43–90.
Vickers 1970. M. Vickers, “The Byzantine sea
walls of Thessaloniki.” Balkan Studies, 11/2
(1970), 261–80.
Vita Basilii 2011. Chronographiae quae
Theophanis Continuati nominee fertur liber
quo Vita Basilii imperatoris amplectitur,
edited by I. Š evčenko. Berlin, 2011.
Vitti 1996. M. Vitti. ∏ ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ ÂͤÏÈÍË Ù˘
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢. ∞fi ÙËÓ ›‰Ú˘Û‹ Ù˘ ¤ˆ˜ ÙÔÓ
°·Ï¤ÚÈÔ. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 160.
∞thens, 1996.
Vlyssidou 2001. V. Vlyssidou. ∞ÚÈÛÙÔÎÚ·ÙÈΤ˜
ÔÈÎÔÁ¤ÓÂȘ Î·È ÂÍÔ˘Û›· (9Ô˜–10Ô˜ ·È.). ŒÚ¢Ó˜
¿Óˆ ÛÙ· ‰È·‰Ô¯Èο ÛÙ¿‰È· ·ÓÙÈÌÂÙÒÈÛ˘ Ù˘
·ÚÌÂÓÔ-·ÊÏ·ÁÔÓÈ΋˜ Î·È Î··‰ÔÎÈ΋˜
·ÚÈÛÙÔÎÚ·Ù›·˜. Thessalonike, 2001.
Vlyssidou 2003. V. Vlyssidou. “∏ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹
·ÚÈÛÙÔÎÚ·Ù›· Î·È Ë ÎÚ·ÙÈ΋ ÂÍÔ˘Û›·: 9Ô˜–
10Ô˜ ·È.” In μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓfi ÎÚ¿ÙÔ˜ Î·È ÎÔÈÓˆÓ›·:
Û‡Á¯ÚÔÓ˜ ηÙ¢ı‡ÓÛÂȘ Ù˘ ¤Ú¢ӷ˜, 107–23.
Athens, 2003.
Vocotopoulos 1979. P. L. Vocotopoulos.
“The Concealed Course Technique: Further
Examples and a Few Remarks.” JÖB 28
(1979): 247–60.
Vocotopoulos 1982. P. L. Vocotopoulos. “√È
ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎÔ› Ó·Ô› Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢ Î·È Ë
ı¤ÛË ÙÔ˘˜ ÛÙ· Ï·›ÛÈ· Ù˘ ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜
Ó·Ô‰ÔÌ›·˜.” In ∏ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎË ÌÂٷ͇
∞Ó·ÙÔÏ‹˜ Î·È ¢‡Û˘, ¶Ú·ÎÙÈο ™˘ÌÔÛ›Ô˘
ΔÂÛÛ·Ú·ÎÔÓÙ·ÂÙËÚ›‰Ô˜ Ù˘ ∂Ù·ÈÚ›·˜
ª·Î‰ÔÓÈÎÒÓ ™Ô˘‰ÒÓ, 30 √ÎÙˆ‚Ú›Ô˘–1
¡ÔÂÌ‚Ú›Ô˘ 1980, 97–110. Thessalonike,
1982.
Vocotopoulos 1992. P. L. Vocotopoulos. ∏
ÂÎÎÏËÛÈ·ÛÙÈ΋ ·Ú¯ÈÙÂÎÙÔÓÈ΋ ÂȘ ÙËÓ ‰˘ÙÈ΋Ó
™ÙÂÚÂ¿Ó ∂ÏÏ¿‰· Î·È ÙËÓ ◊ÂÈÚÔÓ, ·fi ÙÔ˘
Ù¤ÏÔ˘˜ ÙÔ˘ 7Ô˘ ̤¯ÚÈ ÙÔ˘ Ù¤ÏÔ˘˜ ÙÔ˘ 10Ô˘
·ÈÒÓÔ˜. 2nd ed., μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ªÓËÌ›·, 2.
Thessalonike, 1992.
Vocotopoulos 2007. P. L. Vocotopoulos.
¶·ÓÙ¿Ó·ÛÛ· ºÈÏÈÈ¿‰Ô˜. μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ
∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 251. Athens, 2007.
Vocotopoulos 2008. P. L. Vocotopoulos. “∏
ÎÙËÙÔÚÈ΋ ÙÔȯÔÁÚ·Ê›· ÛÙÔ ÂÚ›ÛÙˆÔ Ù˘
¶·ÓÙ·Ó¿ÛÛ˘ ºÈÏÈÈ¿‰Ô˜.” DChAE 29
(2008): 73–80.
Volanakis 1976. I. Volanakis. Δ·
¶·Ï·ÈÔ¯ÚÈÛÙÈ·ÓÈο ‚·ÙÈÛÙ‹ÚÈ· Ù˘ ∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜.
μÈ‚Ï. Ù˘ ÂÓ ∞ı‹Ó·È˜ ∞Ú¯. ∂Ù., 84. Athens,
1976.
Volanakis 1982–84. I. I. Volanakis. “√ Ó·fi˜
ÙÔ˘ ∞Á. ¢ËÌËÙÚ›Ô˘ ∞ÎÚÔÎÔÚ›ÓıÔ˘ Î·È Ù· ÂÓ
·˘ÙÒ Ûˆ˙fiÌÂÓ· ÁÏ˘Ù¿.” ¶ÂÏÔÔÓÓËÛȷο
15 (1982–84): 101–12.
Vollgraff 1928. W. Vollgraff. “Arx
Argorum.” Mnémosyne 56 (1928): 315–28.
Vollgraff 1956. W. Vollgraff. Le sanctuaire
d’Apollon Pythéen à Argos. Études
Péloponnésiennes, 1. Paris, 1956.
Volos 1991. £ÂÛÛ·ÏÈο æËÊȉˆÙ¿. Exh. cat.,
Larissa 1989, Δrikala 1990, Volos 1991.
∞thens, 1991.
Voltyraki 2012. E. Voltyraki. “. . . ἄγεται . . .
γαμετὴν ἐκ τῆς Ἑλλάδος.” In ΔÚÈ·ÎÔÛÙfi
¢Â‡ÙÂÚÔ ™˘ÌfiÛÈÔ μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ηÈ
ªÂÙ·‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹˜ ∞Ú¯·ÈÔÏÔÁ›·˜ Î·È Δ¤¯Ó˘.
∞ı‹Ó·, 11, 12 Î·È 13 ª·˝Ô˘ 2012. ¶ÚfiÁÚ·ÌÌ·
Î·È ¶ÂÚÈÏ‹„ÂȘ ∂ÈÛËÁ‹ÛÂˆÓ Î·È
∞Ó·ÎÔÈÓÒÛˆÓ, 28–29. ∞thens, 2012.
Vournous 1997. M. Vournous. “Aqueduct.
Chios, Greece.” In Thessalonike 1997,
336–37.
Vranousis 1967–68. L. Vranousis. “πÛÙÔÚÈο
Î·È ÙÔÔÁÚ·ÊÈο ÙÔ˘ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎÔ‡ οÛÙÚÔ˘
ÙˆÓ πˆ·ÓÓ›ÓˆÓ.” ÷ÚÈÛÙ‹ÚÈÔÓ ÂȘ ∞. ∫.
√ÚÏ¿Ó‰ÔÓ, vol. IV, 439–515. Athens,
1967–68.
Vroom 2003. J. Vroom. After antiquity.
Ceramics and society in the Aegean from the
7th to the 20th century A.C. A case study from
Boeotia, central Greece. Archaeological
studies. Leiden University, 10. Leiden,
2003.
Walmsley 2007. A. Walmsley. Early Islamic
Syria. An archaeological Assessment. London,
2007.
Washington, D.C., and Los Angeles 2013.
Heaven and Earth. Byzantine Art from Greek
Collections, edited by A. Drandaki, D.
Papanikola-Bakirtzi, and A. Tourta. Exh.
cat. Athens 2013.
Westerink 1972. L. G. Westerink.
“Marginalia by Arethas in Moscow Greek
Ms. 231.” Byzantion 42 (1972): 196–244.
Westerink 1973. L. G. Westerink, Niketas
Magistros, Lettres d’un exilé (928–946). Paris,
1973.
White 1991. W. P. White. “Plans of Nicopolis
in the Archives of the Scuola Archeologica
Italiana di Atene.” ASAtene 64–65 [48–49]
(1991): 295–325.
Wickham 2005. C. Wickham. Framing the
Early Middle Ages: Europe and the
Mediterranean, 400–800. Oxford, 2005.
Williams 1820. H. W. Williams. Travels in
Italy, Greece and the Ionian islands. In a series
of letters, descriptive of manners, scenery and
the fine arts, vol. II. Edinburgh, 1820.
Williams 1973. C. K. Williams II. “Excavations
at Corinth.” ∞Delt 28 (1973): Chronika μ1,
136–43.
Williams 1977. C. K. Williams II. “Corinth
1977: Forum Southwest.” Hesperia 47
(1978): 1–50.
Williams 2003. C. K. Williams II. “Frankish
Corinth: an Overview.” In Centenary 2003,
423–34.
Williams and Fisher 1975. C. K. Williams II
and J. Fisher. “Corinth 1974: Forum
Southwest.” Hesperia 44 (1975): 1–50.
Williams and Zervos 1991. C. K. Williams II
and O. Zervos. “Corinth, 1990: Southeast
Corner of Temenos E.” Hesperia 60 (1991):
1–58.
Williams and Zervos 1992. C. K. Williams II
and O. Zervos. “Frankish Corinth: 1991.”
Hesperia 61 (1992): 133–91.
Williams et al. 1997. C. K. Williams, E.
Barnes, and L. Snyder. “Frankish Corinth
1996.” Hesperia 66 (1997): 7–47.
Winkelmann 1987. F. Winkelmann.
Quellenstudien zur herrschenden Klasse von
Byzanz im 8. und 9. Jahrhundert. Berliner
byzantinistische Arbeiten, 54. Berlin,1987.
Woodhouse 1986. C. M. Woodhouse.
George Gemistos Plethon, the Last of the
Hellenes. Oxford, 1986.
Xanthoudides 1939. S. Xanthoudides. ∏
∂ÓÂÙÔÎÚ·Ù›· ÂÓ ∫Ú‹ÙË Î·È ÔÈ Î·Ù¿ ÙˆÓ ∂ÓÂÙÒÓ
·ÁÒÓ˜ ÙˆÓ ∫ÚËÙÒÓ, edited by I.
Kalitsounaki. Texte und Forschungen zur
Byzantinisch-Neugriechischen Philologie,
34. Athens, 1939.
Xanthoudides 1964. S. Xanthoudides.
ÿӉ·Í–∏Ú¿ÎÏÂÈÔÓ. πÛÙÔÚÈο ÛËÌÂÈÒÌ·Ù·.
Herakleion, 1964.
Xanthoudides 1980. S. Xanthoudides.
ªÂÏÂÙ‹Ì·Ù·, edited by N. Panagiotakis and
Th. Detorakis. Herakleion, 1980.
Xe CIAC 1984. Xe Congrès International
d’Archéologie Chrétienne. Thessalonique, 28
septembre–4 octobre 1980. Vol. I : Rapports;
vol. II : Communications. ∂ÏÏËÓÈο.
¶·Ú¿ÚÙËÌ·, 26. Thessalonike and Vatican
City, 1984.
Xyngopoulos 1929. A. Xyngopoulos.
∂˘ÚÂÙ‹ÚÈÔÓ ÙˆÓ ªÂ۷ȈÓÈÎÒÓ ÌÓËÌ›ˆÓ Ù˘
∂ÏÏ¿‰Ô˜. 1. ªÂ۷ȈÓÈο ÌÓËÌ›· ∞ÙÙÈ΋˜, ∞.
∞ıËÓÒÓ, Ù‡¯. μ’, ∞thens, 1929.
Xyngopoulos 1938. A. Xyngopoulos. “∏
ÙÔȯÔÁÚ·Ê›· Ù˘ ∞Ó·Ï‹„ˆ˜ ÂÓ ÙË ·„›‰È ÙÔ˘
∞Á›Ô˘ °ÂˆÚÁ›Ô˘ Ù˘ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” ∞∂
(1938): 32–53.
Xyngopoulos 1956. A. Xyngopoulos. “∞È
·ÔÏÂÛıÂ›Û·È ÙÔȯÔÁÚ·Ê›·È Ù˘ ¶·Ó·Á›·˜
÷ÏΤˆÓ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” ª·Î‰ÔÓÈο 4
(1956): 1–19.
Xyngopoulos 1957a. A. Xyngopoulos. “∞È
ÙÔȯÔÁÚ·Ê›·È ÙˆÓ ∞Á›ˆÓ ΔÂÛÛ·Ú¿ÎÔÓÙ· ÂȘ
ÙËÓ ∞¯ÂÈÚÔÔ›ËÙÔÓ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.” ∞∂
(1957): 6–30.
Xyngopoulos 1957b. A. Xyngopoulos. Δ·
ÌÓËÌ›· ÙˆÓ ™ÂÚ‚›ˆÓ. ∂Ù·ÈÚ›· ª·Î‰ÔÓÈÎÒÓ
™Ô˘‰ÒÓ. ÿ‰Ú˘Ì· ªÂÏÂÙÒÓ ÃÂÚÛÔÓ‹ÛÔ˘
ÙÔ˘ ∞›ÌÔ˘, 18. Athens, 1957.
Xyngopoulos 1960. A. Xyngopoulos.
“√ ÌÂ۷ȈÓÈÎfi˜ ‡ÚÁÔ˜ ÙÔ˘ ¶·ÚıÂÓÒÓÔ˜.”
∞∂ (1960): 1–16.
Xyngopoulos 1965. A. Xyngopoulos. ŒÚ¢ӷÈ
ÂȘ Ù· ‚˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿ ÌÓËÌ›· ÙˆÓ ™ÂÚÚÒÓ.
∂Ù·ÈÚ›· ª·Î‰ÔÓÈÎÒÓ ™Ô˘‰ÒÓ. ÿ‰Ú˘Ì·
ÌÂÏÂÙÒÓ ÃÂÚÛÔÓ‹ÛÔ˘ ÙÔ˘ ∞›ÌÔ˘, 77.
Athens, 1965.
Xyngopoulos 1973–74. A. Xyngopoulos. “∞È
ÙÔȯÔÁÚ·Ê›·È ÙÔ˘ ∞ηı›ÛÙÔ˘ ⁄ÌÓÔ˘ ÂȘ ÙËÓ
¶·Ó·Á›· ÙˆÓ Ã·ÏΤˆÓ £ÂÛÛ·ÏÔӛ΢.”
DChAE 7 (1973–74): 61–77.
Xyngopoulos 1999. A. Xyngopoulos,
£ÂÛÛ·ÏÔÓ›ÎÂÈ· ªÂÏÂÙ‹Ì·Ù· (1925–1979),
Thessalonike, 1999.
Yangaki 2008. A. G. Yangaki. “Céramique
glaçurée provenant de Nauplie et d’Argos
(XIIe–XIIIe siècles): observations
préliminaires.” BCH 132 (2008): 587–616.
Yangaki 2012. A. G. Yangaki. ∂Ê˘·ÏˆÌ¤ÓË
ÎÂÚ·ÌÈ΋ ·fi ÙË ı¤ÛË ‘ÕÁÈÔÈ £Âfi‰ˆÚÔÈ’ ÛÙËÓ
∞ÎÚÔÓ·˘Ï›· (11Ô˜–17Ô˜ ·È.). ∂Ú¢ÓËÙÈ΋
‚È‚ÏÈÔı‹ÎË, 7. Athens, 2012.
Yannopoulos 1993. P. Yannopoulos.
“Métropoles du Péloponnèse mésobyzantin:
un souvenir des invasions avaroslaves.” Byzantion 63 (1993): 388–400.
Yegül 1992. F. Yegül. Baths and Bathing in
Classical Antiquity. New York, 1992.
Zachos 2001. K. Zachos. ΔÔ ÌÓËÌÂ›Ô ÙÔ˘
√ÎÙ·‚È·ÓÔ‡ ∞˘ÁÔ‡ÛÙÔ˘ ÛÙË ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË. ΔÔ
ÙÚfi·ÈÔ Ù˘ ¡·˘Ì·¯›·˜ ÙÔ˘ ∞ÎÙ›Ô˘. ªÓËÌ›·
¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘, 1. Athens, 2001.
Zachos 2007. Nicopolis μ’. Proceedings of the
Second International Nicopolis Symposium
(11–15 September 2002), edited by K. L.
Zachos. 2 vols. Preveza, 2007.
Zachos 2007a. K. Zachos, “H Ô¯‡ÚˆÛË Î·È Ë
ÔÏÂÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ ÔÚÁ¿ÓˆÛË Ù˘ ڈ̷˚΋˜
¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘: ¡ÂfiÙÂÚ· ÛÙÔȯ›· ηÈ
·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ.” In Zachos 2007, vol. 1,
273–98.
Zachos 2007b. K. Zachos, “Δ· ÁÏ˘Ù¿ ÙÔ˘
‚ˆÌÔ‡ ÛÙÔ ÌÓËÌÂ›Ô ÙÔ˘ √ÎÙ·‚È·ÓÔ‡
∞˘ÁÔ‡ÛÙÔ˘ ÛÙË ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË: ª›· ÚÒÙË
ÚÔÛ¤ÁÁÈÛË.” In Zachos 2007, vol. 1,
411–34.
Zachos 2008. K. Zachos. ÕÎÙÈ·. ∞ıÏËÙÈÎÔ›
·ÁÒÓ˜ ÙˆÓ ·˘ÙÔÎÚ·ÙÔÚÈÎÒÓ ¯ÚfiÓˆÓ ÛÙË
¡ÈÎfiÔÏË Ù˘ ∏›ÚÔ˘. ªÓËÌ›· ¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘,
3. Athens, 2008.
Zachos et al. 2008. K. Zachos, D. Kalpakis,
C. Kappa, and T. Kyrkou. ¡ÈÎfiÔÏË.
∞ÔηχÙÔÓÙ·˜ ÙËÓ fiÏË Ù˘ ӛ΢ ÙÔ˘
∞˘ÁÔ‡ÛÙÔ˘/Nicopolis. Revealing the City of
Augustus’ Victory. Athens, 2008.
Zakythinos 1958. D. A. Zakythinos.
“Korreferat zu E. Kirsten, Die byzantinische
Stadt.” In Berichte zum XI. Internationalen
Byzantinisten-Kongress, 48–51. Munich,
1958.
Zakythinos 1965. D. A. Zakythinos. ∏
μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ‹ ∂ÏÏ¿˜. Athens, 1965.
Zakythinos 1966: D. A. Zakythinos, “La
grande brèche dans la tradition historique
de l’Hellénisme du septième au neuvième
siècle.” ÷ÚÈÛÙ‹ÚÈÔÓ ÂȘ ∞. ∫. √ÚÏ¿Ó‰ÔÓ, vol.
3, 300–327. Athens, 1966.
Zakythinos 1975. D. A. Zakythinos. Le
despotat grec de Morée, I, Histoire publique; II,
Vie et institutions, edited and enlarged by
Ch. Maltézou. 2 vols. London, 1975.
Zambas 2007. K. Zambas. “¶·Ú·ÙËÚ‹ÛÂȘ ÁÈ·
ÙÔ Û¯¤‰ÈÔ Î·È ÙËÓ ÔÈÎÔ‰ÔÌÈ΋ Ù¯ÓÔÏÔÁ›·
ÙÔ˘ ڈ̷˚ÎÔ‡ Ù›¯Ô˘˜ Ù˘ ¡ÈÎfiÔÏ˘ ÛÙËÓ
ÂÚÈÔ¯‹ Ù˘ ‚fiÚÂÈ·˜ ‡Ï˘ ÙÔ˘.” In Zachos
2007, vol. 1, 263–72.
Zenginis 1968. I. E. Zenginis. ΔÔ ÕÚÁÔ˜ ‰È·
̤ÛÔ˘ ÙˆÓ ·ÈÒÓˆÓ. 2nd ed. Pyrgos, 1968.
Zivas 1964. D. Zivas. “The Byzantine fortress
of Arta.” Internationales Burgen-Institut
Bulletin 19 (1964): 33–43.
Zivas and Papaioannou 1970. μ˘˙·ÓÙÈÓ¿
ÌÓËÌ›·. ∂ÎÎÏËÛ›·È ÂÚÈÔ¯‹˜ ∞ÙÙÈ΋˜, edited
by D. A. Zivas and K. S. Papaioannou.
Athens, 1970.
Ž ivkovic’ 1999. T. Ž ivkovic’. “The date of the
creation of the theme of Peloponnese.”
™‡ÌÌÂÈÎÙ· 13 (1999): 141–55.
Zonaras 1871. Ioannis Zonare, Epitomae
Historiarum, vol. IV, edited by L. Dindorfius.
μibliotheca Scriptorum Graecorum et
Romanorum Teubneriana. Scriptores
Graeci. Leipzig, 1871.
Zosimos 1887. Zosimi comitis et exadvocati
fisci Historia Nova, edited by L.
Mendelssohn. Leipzig, 1887.
Zosimos 1971. Zosime, Histoire Nouvelle, vol.
II, edited by F. Paschaud. Paris, 1971.
Zosimos 1982. Zosimos. New History,
translated with commentary by R. T.
Ridley. Byzantina Australiensia, 2.
Canberra, 1982.
| 293 |